Selected quad for the lemma: authority_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
authority_n king_n law_n resist_v 2,184 5 9.6676 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A70760 Bishop Overall's convocation-book, MDCVI concerning the government of God's catholick church, and the kingdoms of the whole world.; Bishop Overall's convocation book Overall, John, 1560-1619.; Sancroft, William, 1617-1693. 1690 (1690) Wing O607; ESTC R2082 200,463 346

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o his_o say_a chamber_n and_o bring_v thither_o again_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n with_o the_o meat-offering_n and_o incense_n can._n xxix_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o almighty_a god_n keep_v not_o his_o promise_n to_o the_o jew_n make_v in_o his_o name_n by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n as_o touch_v their_o deliverance_n by_o cyrus_n out_o of_o their_o captivity_n because_o they_o be_v not_o restore_v to_o any_o such_o perfect_a liberty_n and_o government_n as_o they_o have_v before_o or_o that_o the_o say_v king_n of_o persia_n continue_v still_o by_o god_n appointment_n a_o supreme_a authority_n over_o the_o jew_n so_o restore_v may_v by_o they_o for_o any_o cause_n or_o under_o any_o colour_n have_v be_v defraud_v of_o their_o tribute_n or_o resist_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n or_o otherwise_o impeach_v either_o in_o their_o state_n or_o person_n or_o that_o zorobabel_n and_o nehemiah_n be_v not_o lawful_a prince_n over_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o be_v place_v in_o that_o government_n without_o the_o people_n election_n or_o that_o they_o the_o say_v prince_n by_o deal_v in_o case_n ecclesiastical_a as_o be_v aforesaid_a do_v take_v more_o upon_o they_o than_o by_o god_n appointment_n appertain_v to_o their_o charge_n or_o that_o the_o priest_n both_o high_a and_o low_a have_v not_o grievous_o sin_v if_o they_o have_v not_o submit_v themselves_o in_o the_o say_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n to_o the_o direction_n of_o those_o their_o civil_a governor_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n lxi_o cap._n xxx_o the_o highpriest_n as_o before_o we_o have_v say_v in_o that_o mild_a and_o temperate_a government_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v ordain_v be_v the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o kingdom_n whereupon_o the_o same_o after_o the_o captivity_n be_v turn_v as_o it_o be_v into_o a_o dukedom_n and_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v the_o prince_n after_o nehemiah_n time_n grow_v poor_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o payment_n to_o those_o king_n to_o who_o they_o be_v tributary_n and_o receive_v small_a assistance_n or_o countenance_n from_o they_o because_o they_o be_v still_o jealous_a of_o they_o whereas_o the_o priest_n it_o seem_v be_v free_v from_o all-tribute_n and_o imposition_n grow_v rich_a and_o be_v no_o way_n suspect_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n so_o require_v that_o the_o highpriest_n do_v easy_o oversway_v both_o their_o prince_n and_o their_o people_n and_o thereby_o attain_v very_o great_a authority_n in_o that_o principality_n only_o they_o stand_v in_o awe_n for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n to_o who_o obedience_n they_o be_v bind_v by_o a_o oath_n when_o they_o be_v make_v high-priest_n but_o otherwise_o for_o aught_o we_o find_v they_o have_v no_o great_a regard_n of_o any_o other_o authority_n which_o so_o advance_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o priesthood_n as_o afterward_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o high-priest_n child_n to_o succeed_v their_o father_n in_o that_o high_a dignity_n grow_v as_o troublesome_a to_o the_o people_n as_o be_v their_o servitude_n to_o the_o persian_n lxii_o for_o jesus_n the_o young_a brother_n of_o john_n the_o second_o highpriest_n after_o eliasib_n mention_v by_o nehemiah_n procure_v by_o corruption_n the_o favour_n of_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o persian_n in_o those_o country_n adjoin_v for_o his_o assistance_n to_o deprive_v his_o brother_n that_o he_o himself_o may_v enjoy_v the_o high-priesthood_n whereof_o his_o elder_a brother_n have_v some_o notice_n do_v kill_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n which_o the_o say_a governor_n take_v in_o so_o evil_a part_n as_o he_o spoil_v the_o say_a temple_n be_v as_o he_o say_v profane_v with_o blood_n and_o lay_v a_o exceed_a great_a tribute_n in_o that_o respect_n upon_o the_o people_n to_o endure_v for_o seven_o year_n but_o john_n the_o highpriest_n continue_v in_o his_o place_n after_o who_o death_n 28._o his_o two_o son_n jaddus_n and_o manasses_n fall_v at_o great_a variance_n the_o young_a to_o make_v himself_o strong_a against_o his_o elder_a brother_n marry_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n with_o a_o daughter_n of_o sanballat_n another_o chief_a ruler_n in_o samaria_n under_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n for_o which_o offence_n jaddus_n notwithstanding_o the_o authority_n of_o sanballat_n remove_v he_o from_o the_o dignity_n of_o priesthood_n 8._o and_o thereupon_o he_o the_o say_v manasses_n procure_v by_o sanballat_n mean_n a_o temple_n to_o be_v build_v in_o mount_n garizin_v near_a samaria_n in_o form_n and_o magnificence_n like_v to_o that_o in_o jerusalem_n where_o he_o flourish_v and_o whither_o all_o the_o lewd_a person_n of_o judah_n have_v daily_a recourse_n upon_o which_o occasion_n much_o trouble_n arise_v afterward_o betwixt_o the_o samaritan_n lxiii_o and_o the_o jew_n the_o say_v jaddus_n live_v till_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o grecian_n begin_v who_o when_o alexander_n have_v overthrow_v darius_n the_o king_n of_o the_o persian_n send_v unto_o he_o ibid._n that_o he_o shall_v assist_v he_o in_o his_o war_n and_o become_v tributary_n to_o the_o macedonian_n as_o he_o have_v be_v to_o the_o persian_n return_v for_o his_o answer_n that_o he_o may_v not_o yield_v thereunto_o because_o he_o have_v take_v a_o oath_n for_o his_o true_a allegiance_n to_o darius_n which_o he_o may_v not_o lawful_o violate_v whilst_o darius_n live_v be_v by_o flight_n escape_v when_o his_o army_n be_v discomfit_v we_o have_v here_o cite_v and_o shall_v hereafter_o cite_v some_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n and_o other_o ancient_a historiographer_n of_o purpose_n to_o continue_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o what_o case_n they_o stand_v from_o time_n to_o time_n after_o the_o day_n of_o nehemiah_n not_o mean_v thereby_o to_o attribute_v any_o canonical_a authority_n unto_o they_o nor_o to_o establish_v any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n out_o of_o they_o but_o only_o to_o proportion_n and_o measure_v the_o regiment_n and_o action_n of_o that_o people_n by_o the_o rule_n and_o analogy_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n can._n xxx_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v contrary_a to_o the_o ground_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o say_v holy_a scripture_n lxiu_o either_o that_o albeit_o king_n of_o persia_n have_v authorize_v some_o succeed_a prince_n as_o they_o do_v zorobabel_n and_o nehemiah_n and_o whether_o they_o do_v so_o or_o no_o be_v not_o certain_a yet_o the_o high_a priest_n may_v afterward_o have_v lawful_o bear_v the_o sway_n that_o they_o do_v and_o not_o be_v subject_a unto_o they_o as_o their_o predecessor_n have_v be_v to_o zorobabel_n and_o nehemiah_n or_o that_o if_o nehemiah_n continue_v alive_a in_o that_o government_n till_o jaddus_n time_n as_o it_o be_v probable_a he_o do_v he_o may_v not_o lawful_o be_v authorize_v as_o before_o though_o he_o be_v old_a have_v reform_v any_o abuse_n in_o the_o priest_n both_o high_a and_o low_a or_o that_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o have_v obey_v he_o therein_o or_o that_o the_o jew_n may_v lawful_o have_v rebel_v for_o any_o cause_n against_o the_o persian_n during_o their_o government_n over_o they_o or_o that_o jaddus_n the_o highpriest_n do_v amiss_o in_o bind_v his_o allegiance_n to_o king_n darius_n by_o a_o oath_n or_o that_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v if_o he_o have_v refuse_v be_v thereunto_o require_v so_o to_o have_v swear_v or_o that_o have_v so_o swear_v he_o may_v lawful_o have_v bear_v arm_n himself_o against_o darius_n or_o have_v solicit_v other_o whether_o alien_n or_o jew_n thereunto_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxxi_o alexander_n by_o god_n providence_n have_v vanquish_v the_o persian_n the_o jew_n among_o many_o other_o nation_n become_v his_o subject_n lxv_o he_o deal_v favourable_o with_o they_o release_v they_o of_o some_o payment_n grant_v they_o liberty_n to_o live_v according_a to_o their_o own_o law_n and_o leave_v their_o government_n in_o every_o point_n as_o he_o find_v it_o their_o duty_n ordinary_a tribute_n and_o some_o of_o their_o royal_a prerogative_n always_o reserve_v to_o the_o macedonian_n as_o they_o have_v be_v before_o to_o the_o persian_n but_o this_o their_o tolerable_a estate_n endure_v not_o long_o for_o upon_o alexander_n death_n his_o chief_a captain_n conspire_v together_o make_v such_o a_o scamble_a division_n of_o the_o empire_n among_o themselves_o as_o they_o can_v every_o one_o almost_o notwithstanding_o seek_v how_o he_o may_v suppress_v the_o rest_n and_o attain_v the_o whole_a alone_a to_o himself_o so_o as_o thereupon_o the_o jew_n be_v as_o free_v from_o the_o macedonian_n as_o any_o other_o of_o their_o border_a neighbour_n none_o of_o the_o say_a captain_n have_v any_o lawful_a interest_n or_o title_n to_o judah_n but_o that_o which_o turn_v to_o the_o benefit_n of_o some_o
the_o disorder_n and_o idolatry_n 26._o in_o those_o day_n be_v ascribe_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o want_n of_o judge_n chief_z ruler_n or_o king_n among_o they_o who_o shall_v have_v reform_v those_o enormity_n not_o only_o in_o they_o but_o likewise_o in_o the_o priest_n themselves_o if_o they_o do_v not_o their_o duty_n especial_o in_o suppress_v of_o idolatry_n as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v can._n xiii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o israelite_n fall_v not_o into_o many_o evil_n and_o disorder_n by_o be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o a_o certain_a chief_a governor_n after_o joshua_n death_n or_o that_o when_o god_n raise_v up_o judge_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o the_o people_n consent_n be_v necessary_a thereunto_o or_o that_o the_o say_v judge_n be_v once_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o those_o place_n receive_v their_o authority_n in_o that_o behalf_n from_o the_o people_n or_o that_o the_o fact_n of_o the_o sichemite_n may_v lawful_o be_v imitate_v by_o any_o christian_a people_n in_o so_o choose_v to_o themselves_o a_o king_n or_o judge_n according_a to_o their_o own_o humour_n or_o that_o the_o want_n of_o king_n prince_n and_o ruler_n in_o any_o country_n be_v not_o the_o mother_n of_o disorder_n and_o confusion_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n fourteen_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o moses_n direct_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v foresee_v that_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v when_o the_o israelite_n be_v quiet_o settle_v in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o king_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o nation_n 16._o and_o therefore_o almighty_a god_n do_v set_v down_o by_o moses_n pen_n the_o duty_n of_o all_o king_n and_o the_o rule_n whereby_o they_o ought_v to_o govern_v jacob_n also_o be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o same_o holy_a spirit_n do_v not_o only_o foretell_v nineteeen_o that_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n shall_v bear_v the_o sceptre_n and_o that_o the_o kingdom_n or_o government_n of_o judah_n shall_v be_v hold_v by_o succession_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o nation_n but_o likewise_o than_o the_o say_a sceptre_n or_o government_n 10._o shall_v not_o be_v take_v away_o from_o that_o tribe_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o altogether_o ignorant_a of_o this_o foresee_a alteration_n when_o find_v divers_a want_n and_o confusion_n among_o they_o after_o the_o death_n of_o one_o judge_n before_o god_n be_v please_v to_o appoint_v they_o another_o they_o first_o offer_v rash_o to_o gideon_n 22._o their_o prince_n that_o his_o child_n and_o offspring_n shall_v succeed_v he_o in_o that_o government_n and_o afterward_o be_v weary_a of_o depend_v upon_o god_n pleasure_n and_o mislike_v the_o rule_n of_o samuel_n son_n 5._o they_o urge_v he_o undutiful_o and_o unreasonable_o that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o king_n to_o rule_v over_o they_o as_o other_o nation_n have_v meaning_n thereby_o principal_o as_o we_o suppose_v that_o such_o their_o king_n may_v by_o succession_n govern_v they_o so_o as_o one_o be_v dead_a they_o may_v still_o have_v another_o 17._o we_o say_v that_o they_o urge_v samuel_n to_o this_o purpose_n undutiful_o and_o unreasonable_o and_o that_o thereupon_o saul_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v their_o king_n because_o otherwise_o if_o they_o have_v expect_v god_n good_a pleasure_n and_o time_n and_o content_v themselves_o with_o his_o care_n over_o they_o in_o raise_v up_o when_o he_o think_v meet_v their_o judge_n to_o govern_v they_o they_o shall_v have_v find_v short_o after_o that_o the_o prophecy_n of_o jacob_n shall_v have_v be_v fulfil_v and_o that_o god_n will_v have_v give_v the_o sceptre_n of_o judah_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o david_n and_o of_o his_o posterity_n according_a to_o their_o desire_n can._n fourteen_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n do_v not_o grievous_o sin_n in_o be_v weary_a of_o god_n immediate_a election_n and_o appointment_n of_o their_o chief_a governor_n or_o that_o the_o people_n preposterous_a haste_n do_v any_o way_n prejudice_v the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o saul_n regal_a power_n xx_o or_o afterward_o of_o the_o sceptre_n of_o judah_n or_o that_o the_o people_n then_o have_v in_o themselves_o any_o authority_n to_o set_v up_o a_o king_n over_o they_o for_o then_o they_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o earnest_a with_o samuel_n to_o make_v they_o a_o king_n or_o that_o after_o david_n advancement_n to_o that_o kingdom_n he_o be_v not_o as_o true_o call_v thereunto_o by_o god_n himself_o as_o aaron_n be_v to_o the_o priesthood_n or_o that_o david_n posterity_n have_v not_o by_o god_n ordinance_n as_o rightful_a a_o interest_n to_o succeed_v he_o in_o his_o say_a kingdom_n as_o either_o aaron_n son_n have_v to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o priesthood_n or_o moses_n joshua_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o judge_n notwithstanding_o that_o god_n himself_o do_v choose_v and_o name_v they_o particular_o have_v in_o their_o government_n or_o that_o the_o people_n then_o have_v any_o more_o authority_n to_o have_v withstand_v either_o david_n or_o any_o of_o his_o posterity_n from_o be_v their_o king_n than_o they_o have_v to_o have_v expel_v either_o moses_n or_o joshua_n or_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o judge_n who_o god_n by_o name_n do_v appoint_v to_o govern_v they_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xv._n it_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n notwithstanding_o that_o they_o have_v their_o kingdom_n by_o succession_n be_v as_o strict_o bind_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n law_n in_o their_o government_n as_o moses_n joshua_n or_o any_o other_o the_o judge_n or_o prince_n elect_a name_v and_o appoint_v by_o god_n himself_o they_o know_v well_o as_o jethro_n say_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o themselves_o to_o hear_v and_o decide_v all_o the_o cause_n and_o controversy_n that_o may_v happen_v in_o their_o kingdom_n xxi_o and_o by_o moses_n example_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o they_o may_v appoint_v and_o have_v judge_n to_o govern_v under_o they_o not_o only_o in_o every_o tribe_n but_o general_o over_o all_o their_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v therein_o according_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o moses_n be_v approve_v by_o god_n himself_o no_o way_n either_o diminish_v their_o regal_a authority_n or_o purpose_v to_o puff_n up_o their_o subject_n with_o a_o conceit_n of_o any_o their_o own_o interest_n in_o the_o government_n which_o they_o have_v not_o from_o or_o under_o they_o but_o thereby_o order_v their_o kingdom_n with_o such_o a_o temperate_a and_o fatherly_a moderation_n as_o be_v most_o agreeable_a for_o the_o government_n of_o god_n people_n can._n xv._n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o bind_v as_o strict_o to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o their_o government_n as_o be_v moses_n joshua_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o judge_n or_o that_o they_o have_v any_o great_a liberty_n to_o do_v what_o they_o list_v than_o the_o other_o have_v or_o that_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n by_o the_o example_n of_o moses_n and_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o predecessor_n in_o their_o princely_a government_n to_o delegate_v and_o appoint_v such_o judge_n and_o governor_n under_o they_o as_o the_o other_o prince_n former_o under_o they_o have_v appoint_v or_o that_o because_o the_o say_a king_n do_v imitate_v the_o say_v prince_n in_o appoint_v such_o judge_n to_o assist_v they_o in_o the_o government_n of_o their_o kingdom_n therefore_o their_o government_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v rather_o aristocratical_a than_o true_o monarchical_a he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xvi_o when_o god_n first_o ordain_v civil_a magistrate_n and_o give_v they_o authority_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o people_n who_o they_o be_v to_o govern_v shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o they_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n till_o moses_n time_n whilst_o the_o people_n of_o god_n that_o profess_v his_o true_a worship_n be_v govern_v by_o that_o authority_n xxij_o which_o be_v potestas_fw-la patria_fw-la and_o in_o a_o sort_n regius_fw-la their_o child_n and_o nephew_n be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n to_o honour_n reverence_n and_o obey_v they_o god_n have_v raise_v up_o moses_n to_o deliver_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n 27._o and_o to_o govern_v they_o afterward_o as_o their_o king_n or_o chief_a ruler_n they_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v hear_v he_o and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n shall_v command_v they_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n 10._o his_o
as_o they_o shall_v have_v do_v and_o that_o therefore_o the_o priesthood_n be_v not_o only_o to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o their_o salvation_n hide_v from_o nature_n but_o likewise_o to_o teach_v they_o that_o grace_n do_v not_o so_o evacuate_v the_o law_n but_o that_o still_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v it_o with_o this_o addition_n or_o interpretation_n that_o their_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o bless_a seed_n of_o the_o woman_n if_o they_o endeavour_v to_o do_v that_o which_o god_n have_v command_v they_o that_o which_o either_o they_o do_v amiss_o or_o omit_v shall_v upon_o their_o repentance_n be_v forgive_v and_o not_o impute_v unto_o they_o yet_o this_o mystical_a and_o heavenly_a doctrine_n do_v no_o way_n release_v or_o set_v at_o liberty_n king_n and_o prince_n from_o their_o charge_n before_o mention_v but_o rather_o lay_v a_o heavy_a burden_n upon_o they_o to_o provide_v that_o their_o subject_n may_v be_v train_v up_o both_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o such_o obedience_n to_o god_n as_o his_o say_a commandment_n so_o qualify_v by_o grace_n as_o be_v beforementioned_a do_v require_v can._n xx._n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o natural_a or_o political_a father_n king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v not_o a_o charge_n lay_v upon_o they_o by_o god_n to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n and_o subject_n in_o his_o fear_n or_o that_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o priesthood_n do_v more_o prejudice_n the_o authority_n of_o natural_a father_n xxxij_o or_o of_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o that_o behalf_n than_o grace_n do_v abrogate_v the_o commandment_n and_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o law_n or_o that_o natural_a parent_n king_n and_o prince_n in_o those_o day_n be_v not_o more_o strict_o bind_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n than_o they_o be_v before_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n great_a mercy_n unto_o they_o to_o provide_v that_o their_o child_n and_o subject_n be_v not_o suffer_v either_o to_o have_v any_o false_a god_n among_o they_o or_o to_o bow_v unto_o or_o worship_v the_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v make_v to_o themselves_o to_o blaspheme_v and_o take_v in_o vain_a the_o bless_a name_n of_o god_n or_o to_o profane_v his_o sabbath_n or_o to_o neglect_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o god_n commandment_n by_o commit_v of_o murder_n adultery_n theft_n and_o such_o like_a offence_n to_o the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n and_o disturbance_n of_o their_o family_n principality_n and_o kingdom_n or_o that_o the_o king_n prince_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o israelite_n be_v instruct_v in_o the_o mystery_n of_o their_o salvation_n be_v not_o as_o much_o bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n to_o bring_v up_o their_o subject_n in_o the_o true_a doctrine_n that_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o bless_a seed_n as_o they_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n that_o they_o shall_v careful_o observe_v the_o moral_a precept_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n or_o that_o be_v so_o far_o bind_v they_o have_v not_o equal_a authority_n to_o compel_v as_o need_n shall_v require_v all_o their_o subject_n of_o every_o call_v and_o condition_n whatsoever_o to_o keep_v and_o observe_v both_o the_o say_a law_n as_o well_o of_o grace_n as_o of_o nature_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxi_o although_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v show_v xxxiij_o that_o godly_a king_n and_o ruler_n among_o the_o jew_n have_v authority_n from_o god_n as_o well_o in_o cause_n of_o true_a religion_n as_o in_o other_o of_o their_o temporal_a affair_n yet_o if_o they_o have_v never_o put_v the_o same_o in_o practice_n some_o scruple_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o simple_a sort_n may_v thereby_o have_v rise_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o it_o but_o this_o point_n also_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o aught_o always_o with_o due_a thankfulness_n for_o the_o same_o to_o be_v remember_v it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o especial_o of_o the_o highpriest_n be_v very_o great_a and_o eminent_a howbeit_o the_o same_o notwithstanding_o have_v it_o not_o be_v for_o godly_a king_n and_o prince_n religion_n among_o the_o jew_n after_o the_o first_o public_a establishment_n of_o it_o will_v not_o have_v continue_v so_o long_o as_o it_o do_v without_o very_o great_a and_o intolerable_a corruption_n moses_n do_v blame_v aaron_n 21._o for_o yield_v to_o the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o idol_n and_o reform_v the_o offence_n and_o again_o when_o aaron_n be_v consecrate_a highpriest_n have_v 17._o with_o his_o two_o son_n eleazar_n and_o ithamar_n do_v amiss_o in_o burn_v the_o sin-offering_a which_o they_o shall_v by_o god_n appointment_n have_v eat_v and_o moses_n be_v angry_a with_o they_o reprove_v they_o for_o it_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o judge_n when_o the_o people_n fall_v to_o the_o worship_v of_o baalim_fw-la and_o ashtaroth_n 6._o the_o scripture_n be_v silent_a what_o become_v of_o the_o priest_n but_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o during_o the_o life_n of_o the_o judge_n xxxiv_o the_o people_n be_v by_o they_o restrain_v in_o some_o sort_n from_o that_o impiety_n whereunto_o etc._n still_o after_o their_o death_n they_o greedy_o return_v 8._o when_o jehosaphat_n come_v to_o his_o kingdom_n he_o find_v the_o people_n so_o destitute_a of_o teacher_n as_o that_o he_o be_v move_v in_o zeal_n to_o send_v the_o priest_n and_o many_o of_o the_o levite_n through_o all_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v they_o ahaz_n the_o king_n of_o judah_n be_v a_o very_a great_a idolater_n 11._o delight_v himself_o altogether_o in_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o heathen_a and_o vriah_n the_o highpriest_n be_v a_o fit_a instrument_n for_o he_o for_o what_o the_o one_o do_v wicked_o command_v the_o other_o to_o the_o intolerable_a profanation_n of_o god_n true_a worship_n be_v ready_a to_o put_v the_o same_o in_o execution_n in_o the_o day_n of_o manasses_n and_o ammon_n 11._o groves_n be_v plant_v hard_o by_o the_o temple_n horse_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o entrance_n of_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n either_o to_o be_v offer_v as_o it_o be_v think_v for_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o sun_n or_o else_o to_o carry_v the_o picture_n of_o it_o as_o a_o idol_n to_o be_v worship_v the_o priest_n sundry_a of_o they_o serve_v in_o high_a place_n and_o many_o of_o the_o people_n burn_v incense_v unto_o baal_n xxxv_o to_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o planet_n and_o to_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n all_o which_o abomination_n the_o godly_a king_n josiah_n do_v abolish_v reform_v both_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o people_n and_o afterward_o when_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n do_v altogether_o neglect_v their_o duty_n in_o church_n cause_n religion_n decrease_v and_o go_v to_o havoc_n insomuch_o as_o the_o scripture_n rehearse_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n do_v set_v down_o this_o 14._o among_o the_o rest_n for_o one_o viz._n all_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o priest_n have_v trespass_v wonderful_o according_a to_o all_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o heathen_a and_o pollute_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o he_o have_v sanctify_v much_o more_o may_v be_v allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n as_o also_o to_o show_v how_o king_n david_n 15._o king_n solomon_n and_o king_n jehosaphat_n distribute_v the_o levite_n and_o priest_n into_o their_o order_n 10._o and_o prescribe_v certain_a rule_n for_o they_o to_o observe_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o attendance_n and_o service_n but_o to_o the_o purpose_n in_o hand_n this_o be_v sufficient_a can._n xxi_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o godly_a prince_n and_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v not_o practice_v their_o authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a or_o that_o in_o such_o their_o practice_n of_o it_o they_o do_v not_o that_o which_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v or_o that_o among_o the_o jew_n the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v not_o very_o much_o further_v xxxuj_o and_o continue_v by_o the_o godly_a care_n and_o endeavour_n of_o their_o prince_n and_o king_n or_o that_o the_o want_n of_o such_o godly_a king_n and_o prince_n be_v not_o then_o a_o occasion_n and_o a_o opportunity_n take_v both_o by_o the_o priest_n and_o by_o the_o people_n to_o follow_v their_o own_o fancy_n and_o to_o run_v into_o many_o disorder_n false_a worship_n idolatry_n and_o sundry_a such_o abomination_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxii_o what_o we_o have_v say_v either_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n or_o of_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a among_o the_o jew_n we_o will_v not_o have_v it_o extend_v so_o far_o as_o if_o we_o imagine_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n king_n
hence_o as_o have_v all_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n here_o in_o the_o world_n as_o vassal_n in_o that_o respect_n and_o subject_n unto_o it_o he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n iu._n the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o work_v our_o salvation_n whilst_o he_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n conform_v himself_o whole_o and_o his_o obedience_n unto_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o law_n of_o the_o church_n then_o in_o force_n inveigh_v not_o with_o any_o bitterness_n against_o the_o high-priest_n though_o they_o be_v his_o enemy_n and_o in_o many_o point_v faulty_a but_o have_v ever_o a_o great_a respect_n of_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o authority_n make_v no_o new_a law_n when_o he_o expound_v the_o old_a erect_v no_o particular_a congregation_n or_o church_n apart_o from_o the_o congregation_n and_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o do_v together_o with_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n join_v with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o their_o public_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n omit_v no_o one_o circumstance_n ceremony_n or_o duty_n undertake_v voluntary_o by_o he_o which_o he_o do_v not_o very_o thorough_o perform_v even_o with_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o life_n as_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o live_v in_o the_o world_n do_v no_o way_n disturb_v the_o civil_a state_n but_o upon_o every_o fit_a occasion_n do_v submit_v himself_o unto_o it_o so_o may_v it_o be_v true_o say_v of_o he_o concern_v the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a former_o by_o god_n himself_o establish_v and_o remain_v still_o among_o the_o jew_n though_o in_o a_o very_a corrupt_a manner_n that_o he_o do_v in_o every_o thing_n thereunto_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n appertain_v conform_v himself_o unto_o it_o while_o it_o last_v i_o say_v while_o it_o last_v because_o upon_o his_o death_n there_o be_v a_o great_a alteration_n according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n than_o whilst_o he_o live_v in_o force_n he_o be_v first_o circumcise_a and_o so_o make_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o whole_a law_n 8._o then_o as_o the_o law_n do_v likewise_o require_v he_o be_v bring_v by_o his_o mother_n to_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v present_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o have_v a_o oblation_n suitable_a to_o their_o poor_a estate_n of_o a_o pair_n of_o turtle-dove_n 13._o or_o two_o pigeon_n offer_v to_o god_n with_o the_o price_n of_o redemption_n for_o he_o 16._o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o manchild_n and_o the_o first-born_a there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o solemn_a feast_n appoint_v by_o the_o law_n which_o he_o honour_v not_o with_o his_o presence_n according_a to_o the_o law_n nay_o he_o be_v please_v to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n 16._o which_o be_v institute_v by_o judas_n maccabaeus_n 23._o and_o his_o brethren_n as_o well_o to_o teach_v all_o posterity_n by_o his_o example_n what_o godly_a magistrate_n may_v ordain_v in_o such_o kind_n of_o cause_n as_o also_o how_o thing_n so_o ordain_v aught_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o as_o he_o be_v circumcise_a so_o do_v he_o celebrate_v and_o observe_v the_o chief_a feast_n of_o the_o passover_n omit_v nothing_o which_o either_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o for_o our_o sake_n he_o have_v undertake_v to_o perform_v and_o although_o the_o priest_n in_o those_o day_n be_v very_o far_o out_o of_o square_a and_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v very_o just_a cause_n in_o that_o respect_n to_o have_v reprove_v they_o sharp_o as_o other_o prophet_n have_v often_o deal_v with_o their_o predecessor_n yet_o he_o do_v so_o much_o regard_v they_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o authority_n unless_o he_o shall_v otherwise_o have_v seem_v to_o have_v contemn_v both_o they_o and_o it_o as_o he_o do_v rather_o choose_v to_o let_v they_o understand_v their_o offence_n by_o parable_n 16._o than_o by_o any_o rough_a reprehension_n 28._o still_o uphold_v they_o in_o their_o credit_n and_o authority_n as_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o that_o behalf_n it_o be_v provide_v when_o among_o many_o other_o his_o wonderful_a great_a miracle_n he_o have_v heal_v certain_a leper_n he_o bid_v they_o go_v show_v themselves_o to_o their_o priest_n 4._o because_o they_o be_v appoint_v judge_n by_o the_o law_n to_o discern_v the_o cure_n of_o that_o disease_n 44._o before_o the_o party_n though_o indeed_o heal_v of_o it_o may_v intermingle_v themselves_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n 14._o and_o do_v further_o require_v they_o to_o offer_v for_o their_o cleanse_v those_o thing_n 14._o which_o moses_n have_v command_v in_o testimonium_fw-la illis_fw-la that_o be_v that_o so_o the_o say_a priest_n may_v plain_o see_v both_o that_o he_o be_v a_o keeper_n of_o the_o law_n and_o also_o that_o he_o have_v heal_v they_o and_o so_o be_v drive_v to_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o incredulity_n or_o at_o the_o least_o prevent_v thereby_o from_o slander_v either_o he_o as_o a_o breaker_n of_o the_o law_n or_o that_o which_o he_o have_v do_v for_o they_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o thorough_o heal_v they_o neither_o be_v it_o any_o way_n repugnant_a hereunto_o that_o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n find_v chap_a and_o change_v 15._o by_o buy_v and_o sell_v in_o the_o temple_n he_o make_v a_o scourge_n of_o small_a cord_n and_o drive_v they_o thence_o with_o the_o sheep_n ox_n dove_n and_o money-bag_n forbid_v they_o to_o make_v his_o father_n house_n a_o house_n of_o merchandise_n for_o he_o do_v not_o thereby_o in_o any_o sort_n prejudice_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o shall_v chief_o have_v prevent_v such_o gross_a abuse_n and_o traffic_v in_o the_o temple_n as_o if_o he_o have_v do_v the_o same_o either_o as_o a_o chief_a priest_n or_o a_o temporal_a king_n according_a to_o some_o man_n fond_a imagination_n by_o any_o pontifical_a or_o regal_a authority_n but_o his_o fact_n therein_o howsoever_o it_o may_v show_v the_o negligence_n of_o the_o say_a priest_n do_v only_o proceed_v from_o his_o divine_a zeal_n as_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o can_v not_o endure_v such_o a_o abominable_a profanation_n of_o god_n house_n many_o prophet_n before_o he_o have_v do_v matter_n very_o lawful_o of_o great_a moment_n through_o the_o like_a divine_a and_o extraordinary_a zeal_n in_o they_o without_o any_o impeachment_n of_o any_o power_n either_o regal_a or_o pontifical_a howbeit_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v oftentimes_o very_o vehement_a against_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n it_o be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a when_o join_v they_o both_o together_o 23._o he_o term_v they_o serpent_n the_o generation_n of_o viper_n and_o denounce_v against_o they_o in_o one_o chapter_n eight_o woe_n conclude_v thus_o how_o shall_v you_o escape_v the_o damnation_n of_o hell_n the_o reason_n that_o these_o curse_n and_o hard_a censure_n be_v joint_o lay_v upon_o they_o be_v because_o they_o themselves_o be_v join_v together_o in_o all_o kind_n of_o impiety_n and_o malice_n against_o christ_n and_o be_v neither_o of_o they_o especial_o the_o pharisees_n any_o plant_n of_o god_n plantation_n for_o whilst_o not_o only_o the_o high-priest_n be_v still_o in_o faction_n and_o fury_n one_o against_o another_o as_o well_o for_o the_o get_n as_o the_o keep_n that_o high_a preferment_n and_o that_o many_o of_o the_o inferior_a priest_n be_v either_o side_v among_o themselves_o for_o one_o party_n or_o other_o or_o else_o more_o idle_a and_o negligent_a in_o discharge_v of_o their_o duty_n than_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v these_o two_o sect_n thrust_v themselves_o into_o the_o church_n and_o through_o their_o hypocrisy_n so_o prevail_v with_o the_o people_n in_o short_a time_n as_o the_o priest_n afterward_o either_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o be_v rid_v of_o they_o because_o on_o the_o one_o side_n they_o think_v it_o in_o vain_a to_o strive_v with_o they_o they_o be_v so_o back_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o find_v they_o so_o diligent_a in_o discharge_v of_o those_o duty_n which_o do_v appertain_v to_o themselves_o and_o withal_o so_o careful_a to_o uphold_v the_o state_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o priesthood_n by_o mean_n whereof_o they_o grow_v very_o short_o into_o so_o great_a estimation_n 2._o that_o as_o one_o write_v of_o the_o pharisee_n whatsoever_o do_v appertain_v to_o public_a and_o solemn_a prayer_n and_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n it_o be_v do_v according_a to_o their_o interpretation_n and_o as_o they_o prescribe_v and_o the_o scribe_n be_v likewise_o doctor_n and_o expounder_n of_o the_o law_n and_o concur_v still_o with_o the_o interpretation_n and_o prescription_n of_o the_o pharisee_n come_v not_o by_o that_o policy_n in_o their_o credit_n and_o reputation_n have_v of_o they_o far_o short_a behind_o they_o the_o distinction_n between_o they_o may_v
such_o lord_n and_o prince_n and_o so_o add_v his_o dicendum_fw-la est_fw-la where_o dally_a and_o shift_v with_o his_o distinction_n the_o answer_n which_o he_o make_v to_o the_o word_n of_o st._n ambrose_n be_v this_o at_o that_o time_n the_o church_n be_v in_o her_o minority_n have_v not_o the_o power_n to_o bridle_v prince_n and_o that_o therefore_o she_o suffer_v the_o faithful_a to_o obey_v julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la in_o those_o thing_n quae_fw-la nondum_fw-la erant_fw-la contra_fw-la fidem_fw-la which_o be_v not_o then_o against_o faith_n ut_fw-la majus_fw-la periculum_fw-la fidei_fw-la vitaretur_fw-la that_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v eschew_v and_o the_o second_o objection_n he_o more_o slight_o pass_v over_o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a reason_n of_o infidel_n and_o apostata_n and_o thus_o this_o great_a schoolman_n rely_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o have_v adventure_v to_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o example_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n against_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o against_o the_o judgement_n of_o st._n ambrose_n not_o care_v how_o many_o thousand_o by_o this_o rebellious_a doctrine_n may_v come_v to_o destruction_n so_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v have_v the_o world_n at_o their_o commandment_n we_o here_o omit_v how_o as_o thomas_n and_o divers_a other_o write_v many_o large_a volume_n upon_o peter_n lombard_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n his_o distinction_n so_o afterward_o and_o especial_o of_o late_a time_n book_n upon_o book_n have_v be_v publish_v upon_o his_o the_o say_v thomas_n work_n all_o of_o they_o pursue_v as_o they_o come_v unto_o it_o this_o seditious_a and_o traitorous_a doctrine_n so_o clerklike_a handle_v by_o their_o master_n only_o we_o observe_v this_o great_a schoolman_n conscience_n how_o in_o labour_v to_o shift_v off_o the_o truth_n maintain_v by_o st._n ambrose_n he_o can_v pass_v over_o a_o lie_n in_o gregory_n the_o seven_o where_o he_o say_v that_o in_o absolve_v of_o subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o obedience_n and_o in_o prohibit_v they_o from_o perform_v their_o duty_n and_o fidelity_n towards_o their_o sovereign_n he_o follow_v the_o statute_n of_o his_o holy_a predecessor_n be_v himself_o the_o first_o that_o ever_o dare_v be_v so_o desperate_a as_o also_o that_o he_o confess_v it_o be_v not_o in_o st._n ambrose_n his_o time_n contra_fw-la fidem_fw-la for_o subject_n to_o obey_v their_o sovereign_n though_o they_o be_v either_o infidel_n or_o excommunicate_v and_o likewise_o how_o thankful_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n accept_v and_o approve_v this_o man_n travel_n so_o resolute_o undertake_v on_o their_o behalf_n vrbanus_n the_o four_o do_v so_o admire_v he_o as_o he_o repute_v his_o doctrine_n veluti_fw-la coelitus_fw-la delapsam_fw-la aqu._n as_o to_o have_v fall_v from_o heaven_n innocentius_n so_o admire_v both_o he_o and_o his_o great_a learning_n ut_fw-la ei_fw-la primum_fw-la post_fw-la canonicam_fw-la scripturam_fw-la locum_fw-la tribuere_fw-la non_fw-la dubitaverat_fw-la as_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o give_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o his_o work_n the_o next_o place_n after_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n 7._o and_o john_n 22th_o make_v he_o a_o saint_n in_o the_o year_n 1329_o about_o forty_o nine_o year_n after_o his_o death_n he_o be_v bear_v during_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o three_o king_n of_o england_n die_v about_o the_o second_o year_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o first_o and_o be_v canonize_v a_o saint_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o second_o so_o ancient_a be_v this_o chief_a pillar_n of_o popery_n placet_fw-la eye_n john_n overall_n cap._n xi_o jvstinian_n the_o emperor_n chronol_n about_o the_o year_n 533._o do_v so_o contract_v the_o civil_a law_n as_o he_o bring_v it_o from_o almost_o 2000_o book_n into_o 50_o beside_o some_o other_o which_o he_o add_v of_o his_o own_o howbeit_o short_o after_o it_o grow_v out_o of_o use_n in_o italy_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o incursion_n of_o sundry_a barbarous_a nation_n who_o neglect_v the_o imperial_a law_n do_v practice_v their_o own_o till_o after_o almost_o 600_o year_n that_o lotharius_n saxo_n the_o emperor_n about_o the_o year_n 1136_o do_v revive_v again_o in_o that_o country_n ursperg_n and_o in_o other_o place_n also_o chron._n the_o ancient_a use_n and_o authority_n of_o it_o which_o course_n of_o the_o emperor_n do_v not_o much_o content_n as_o it_o seem_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o revive_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o ancient_a honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o empire_n whereupon_o very_o short_o after_o eugenius_n the_o three_o set_v gratian_n in_o hand_n to_o compile_v a_o body_n of_o canon-law_n 1._o by_o contract_v into_o one_o book_n the_o ancient_a constitution_n ecclesiastical_a and_o canon_n of_o council_n that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o papacy_n may_v not_o in_o that_o behalf_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o empire_n which_o work_v the_o say_a gratian_n perform_v and_o publish_v in_o the_o day_n of_o stephen_n king_n of_o england_n about_o the_o year_n 1151._o term_v the_o same_o concordia_fw-la discordantium_fw-la canonum_fw-la a_o concord_n of_o disagree_a canon_n of_o who_o great_a pain_n therein_o so_o by_o he_o take_v a_o learned_a man_n say_v thus_o gratianus_n ille_fw-la jus_fw-la pontificale_fw-la dilaniavit_fw-la 6._o atque_fw-la confudit_fw-la that_o fellow_n gratian_n do_v tear_v in_o piece_n the_o pontifical_a law_n and_o confound_v it_o the_o same_o be_v in_o our_o library_n sincere_a and_o perfect_a but_o this_o testimony_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o to_o the_o contrary_a that_o may_v true_o be_v object_v against_o that_o book_n notwithstanding_o the_o author_n chief_a purpose_n be_v to_o magnify_v and_o extol_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n his_o say_a book_n get_v we_o know_v not_o how_o this_o glorious_a title_n decretum_fw-la aureum_fw-la divi_z gratiani_n 1510._o the_o golden_a decree_n of_o s._n gratian_n and_o he_o himself_o as_o it_o appear_v become_v for_o the_o time_n a_o saint_n for_o his_o pain_n indeed_o he_o break_v the_o ice_n to_o those_o that_o come_v after_o he_o by_o devise_v the_o method_n which_o since_o have_v be_v pursue_v for_o the_o enlarge_n and_o growth_n of_o the_o say_a body_n by_o some_o of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o gregory_n the_o nine_o about_o the_o year_n 1236._o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o three_o ib._n after_o sundry_a draught_n make_v by_o innocentius_n the_o three_o chronol_n and_o other_o of_o a_o second_o volume_n of_o the_o canon-law_n cause_v the_o same_o to_o be_v peruse_v enlarge_v and_o by_o his_o authority_n to_o be_v publish_v and_o be_v divide_v into_o 5_o book_n it_o be_v entitle_v the_o decretal_n of_o gregory_n the_o nine_o boniface_n the_o eight_o the_o great_a augustus_n as_o before_o we_o have_v show_v command_v likewise_o another_o collection_n to_o be_v make_v of_o such_o constitution_n and_o decree_n as_o have_v either_o be_v omit_v by_o gregory_n or_o be_v make_v afterward_o by_o other_o succeed_a bishop_n and_o council_n and_o this_o collection_n be_v call_v sextus_n libre_fw-la decretalium_fw-la the_o six_o book_n of_o the_o decretal_n and_o be_v set_v out_o to_o the_o world_n in_o the_o year_n 1298._o in_o the_o reign_n of_o k._n edward_n the_o first_o clement_n the_o five_o in_o like_a manner_n have_v bestow_v great_a travel_n upon_o a_o four_o work_n ciementin_n comprehend_v 5_o book_n die_v before_o he_o can_v finish_v it_o but_o his_o successor_n john_n the_o 22th_o do_v in_o the_o year_n 1317._o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o second_o make_v perfect_a and_o publish_v the_o same_o work_n of_o clement_n and_o give_v it_o the_o name_n of_o the_o clementines_n clem._n afterwards_o also_o come_v out_o another_o volume_n term_v the_o extravagant_n because_o it_o do_v not_o only_o comprehend_v certain_a decree_n of_o the_o say_v john_n the_o 22th_o but_o likewise_o sundry_a other_o constitution_n make_v by_o other_o pope_n both_o before_o and_o after_o he_o which_o fly_v abroad_o uncertain_o in_o many_o man_n hand_n and_o be_v therefore_o sweep_v up_o and_o put_v together_o after_o the_o year_n 1478._o extravag_n into_o one_o bundle_n call_v extravagant_a decretal_n which_o come_v to_o light_v post_fw-la sextum_fw-la after_o the_o six_o by_o which_o title_n the_o compiler_n of_o this_o work_n will_v glad_o as_o it_o seem_v have_v have_v it_o account_v the_o seven_o book_n of_o the_o decretal_n but_o it_o never_o attain_v that_o credit_n the_o same_o by_o sixtus_n quintus_n assent_n be_v attribute_v to_o a_o collection_n of_o certain_a other_o constitution_n make_v by_o peter_n matthew_n quintum_fw-la of_o divers_a pope_n from_o the_o time_n of_o sixtus_n the_o four_o who_o die_v in_o the_o year_n 1484._o to_o all_o these_o book_n mention_v there_o have_v be_v late_o add_v three_o great_a volume_n of_o decretal_a epistle_n from_o st._n clement_n
ecclesiastical_o and_o to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o their_o salvation_n through_o the_o bless_a seed_n of_o the_o woman_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o divers_a manner_n deliver_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o they_o this_o priestly_a office_n and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n ms._n be_v yet_o join_v as_o before_o the_o flood_n with_o the_o office_n of_o the_o chief_a father_n and_o civil_a governor_n noah_n himself_o be_v both_o a_o prince_n and_o a_o priest_n 20._o he_o build_v altar_n offer_a sacrifice_n and_o teach_v the_o church_n 28._o after_o the_o flood_n 350._o year_n all_o that_o which_o he_o have_v learn_v from_o his_o father_n concern_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n the_o fall_n of_o man_n and_o of_o his_o restitution_n by_o christ_n and_o general_o all_o that_o do_v concern_v necessary_o either_o civil_a society_n and_o government_n or_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n and_o authority_n not_o omit_v the_o very_a ceremony_n 20._o after_o noah_n the_o chief_a father_n sem_fw-mi abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n do_v execute_v that_o office_n god_n himself_o renew_v unto_o they_o this_o promise_n of_o salvation_n through_o the_o bless_a seed_n and_o not_o only_o confirm_v the_o same_o to_o abraham_n 10._o and_o his_o posterity_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o circumcision_n but_o likewise_o teach_v and_o instruct_v they_o in_o that_o heavenly_a mystery_n sometime_o by_o his_o own_o voice_n and_o sometime_o by_o vision_n and_o divers_a other_o way_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n make_v more_o plain_a mention_n than_o they_o do_v of_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o same_o evangelical_n doctrine_n before_o the_o flood_n can._n vii_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v therefore_o affirm_v either_o that_o the_o priestly_a office_n and_o authority_n ecclesiastical_a which_o noah_n have_v before_o the_o flood_n be_v by_o that_o deluge_n determine_v or_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o election_n of_o his_o offspring_n confer_v again_o upon_o he_o ms._n or_o that_o sem_fw-mi abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n be_v neither_o priest_n nor_o have_v any_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n until_o they_o be_v choose_v thereunto_o by_o their_o child_n and_o nephew_n or_o that_o the_o priesthood_n and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v not_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n for_o the_o govern_n and_o instruct_v of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o will_n and_o direction_n of_o god_n himself_o deliver_v and_o reveal_v unto_o they_o as_o be_v aforesaid_a he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n viii_o as_o before_o the_o flood_n cain_n and_o his_o posterity_n be_v opposite_a to_o the_o posterity_n of_o seth_n and_o may_v therefore_o general_o have_v be_v call_v the_o church_n malignant_a so_o fall_v it_o out_o after_o the_o flood_n in_o the_o generation_n of_o japhet_n but_o especial_o of_o cham_n against_o the_o posterity_n of_o sem_fw-mi in_o who_o lineage_n the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n through_o the_o bless_a seed_n be_v especial_o continue_v and_o not_o that_o only_a 6._o but_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o the_o child_n of_o seth_n in_o process_n of_o time_n provoke_v against_o they_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n by_o corrupt_v their_o way_n and_o follow_v in_o their_o conversation_n the_o generation_n of_o cain_n ●_o and_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n all_o of_o they_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o cain_n offspring_n just_o punish_v and_o drown_v by_o the_o flood_n save_v eight_o person_n noah_n and_o his_o wife_n sem_fw-mi cham_fw-mi and_o japhet_n and_o their_o three_o wife_n so_o do_v the_o posterity_n not_o only_o of_o cham_n and_o japhet_n as_o well_o before_o as_o after_o the_o confusion_n of_o tongue_n ms._n and_o the_o death_n of_o noah_n but_o likewise_o the_o offspring_n of_o sem_fw-mi who_o be_v call_v more_o effectual_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n and_o right_a service_n of_o the_o true_a god_n leave_v the_o way_n of_o noah_n and_o sem_fw-mi and_o give_v just_a occasion_n to_o almighty_a god_n have_v he_o not_o bind_v himself_o by_o his_o covenant_n to_o the_o contrary_a to_o have_v drown_v they_o all_o again_o 8._o nimrod_n descend_v of_o cham_n not_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o patriarchal_a or_o regal_a mild_a government_n ordain_v of_o god_n by_o the_o law_n of_o reason_n and_o nature_n become_v a_o tyrant_n and_o lord_n of_o confusion_n and_o by_o history_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o within_o few_o age_n after_o the_o death_n of_o noah_n son_n great_a barbarism_n and_o confusion_n fall_v among_o their_o generation_n through_o their_o pride_n and_o dissoluteness_n in_o that_o they_o think_v scorn_v to_o be_v govern_v either_o civil_o or_o ecclesiastical_o as_o god_n himself_o by_o noah_n have_v ordain_v or_o to_o be_v rule_v otherwise_o than_o as_o they_o list_v themselves_o and_o touch_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n they_o mingle_v with_o true_a religion_n many_o false_a worship_n and_o choose_v priest_n among_o themselves_o to_o serve_v god_n after_o their_o own_o fashion_n or_o rather_o they_o devise_v to_o themselves_o many_o god_n and_o find_v out_o priest_n according_o such_o as_o be_v content_a to_o train_v they_o up_o in_o those_o kind_n of_o impiety_n in_o chaldea_n itself_o and_o the_o place_n adjacent_a ms._n the_o child_n of_o sem_fw-mi be_v all_o of_o they_o almost_o grow_v to_o be_v idolater_n insomuch_o as_o god_n himself_o to_o keep_v a_o remnant_n more_o careful_o that_o shall_v through_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o his_o name_n be_v partaker_n of_o his_o mercy_n in_o christ_n call_v abraham_n with_o his_o family_n from_o the_o habitation_n of_o his_o father_n to_o become_v a_o stranger_n in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n can._n viii_o if_o therefore_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o say_a posterity_n of_o noah_n child_n do_v well_o in_o alter_v either_o the_o manner_n or_o form_n of_o civil_a government_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v by_o bring_v in_o of_o tyranny_n or_o factious_a popularity_n or_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a by_o frame_v unto_o themselves_o a_o new_a kind_n of_o priesthood_n and_o worship_n after_o their_o own_o humour_n or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o such_o as_o then_o serve_v god_n upon_o any_o pretence_n to_o have_v imitate_v their_o example_n in_o either_o of_o those_o course_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n ix_o it_o be_v apparent_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o although_o god_n be_v not_o please_v that_o the_o issue_n of_o jacob_n child_n shall_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o son_n of_o noah_n grow_v up_o to_o become_v the_o head_n of_o so_o many_o several_a nation_n ms._n but_o continue_v together_o shall_v make_v one_o people_n and_o nation_n to_o be_v rule_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o same_o law_n and_o magistrate_n yet_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o his_o heavenly_a wisdom_n that_o in_o so_o great_a a_o people_n as_o shall_v descend_v from_o jacob_n child_n no_o one_o tribe_n or_o family_n shall_v continue_v charge_v both_o with_o the_o civil_a or_o regal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a function_n and_o therefore_o jacob_n make_v way_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n herein_o do_v take_v just_a occasion_n move_v thereunto_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o deprive_v his_o elder_a son_n reuben_n of_o his_o interest_n by_o birthright_n in_o both_o those_o prerogative_n to_o be_v dispose_v afterward_o by_o god_n unto_o other_o of_o his_o brethren_n now_o after_o jacob_n death_n the_o former_a thereof_o viz._n the_o sceptre_n in_o process_n of_o time_n fall_v to_o judah_n as_o jacob_n before_o have_v prophesy_v and_o the_o other_o also_o viz._n the_o priesthood_n be_v afterward_o give_v to_o levi_n by_o god_n ordinance_n cap._n x._o after_o jacob_n death_n till_o moses_n be_v send_v to_o deliver_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n there_o be_v little_a in_o the_o scripture_n touch_v either_o the_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a government_n fourteen_o it_o appear_v that_o joseph_n be_v a_o great_a prince_n in_o egypt_n by_o the_o king_n authority_n be_v whilst_o he_o live_v chief_a among_o his_o brethren_n but_o after_o his_o death_n through_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n which_o god_n suffer_v to_o lie_v heavy_o upon_o they_o for_o many_o year_n the_o civil_a authority_n which_o any_o of_o the_o tribe_n have_v be_v very_o small_a there_o be_v such_o jealousy_n of_o their_o number_n which_o daily_o increase_v above_o all_o ordinary_a expectation_n as_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o the_o king_n successive_o will_v suffer_v any_o great_a authority_n to_o rest_v in_o they_o howbeit_o we_o think_v they_o have_v some_o either_o the_o chief_a head_n of_o the_o tribe_n general_o or_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o ephraim_n and_o reuben_n for_o it_o may_v be_v jacob_n prophecy_n of_o reuben_n lose_v the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o
birthright_n be_v not_o present_o execute_v which_o do_v in_o their_o civilaffair_n appertain_v to_o themselves_o bear_v some_o chief_a sway_n among_o they_o and_o touch_v the_o priesthood_n although_o the_o people_n be_v then_o general_o much_o pollute_v with_o idolatry_n yet_o therein_o also_o they_o have_v some_o most_o likely_a the_o first-born_a who_o although_o they_o dare_v not_o there_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n as_o they_o shall_v in_o that_o servitude_n yet_o some_o of_o they_o we_o doubt_v not_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o matter_n concern_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o bless_a seed_n and_o perform_v 15._o as_o they_o may_v the_o other_o office_n of_o their_o priesthood_n 8._o although_o many_o of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o the_o priest_n as_o it_o seem_v be_v then_o great_o pollute_v with_o idolatry_n canon_n ix_o and_o x._o ix_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o unite_n of_o the_o child_n of_o jacob_n into_o one_o nation_n or_o the_o sever_n of_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a function_n the_o prerogative_n of_o birthright_n from_o reuben_n the_o first-born_a and_o divide_v of_o they_o from_o one_o person_n be_v make_v by_o themselves_o x._o or_o that_o their_o servitude_n in_o egypt_n be_v unjust_o suffer_v to_o lie_v upon_o they_o so_o long_o by_o almighty_a god_n xv_o or_o that_o they_o be_v his_o church_n he_o leave_v they_o destitute_a of_o such_o comfort_n of_o direction_n and_o instruction_n as_o be_v necessary_a those_o time_n consider_v for_o their_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a estate_n or_o that_o the_o people_n take_v upon_o they_o the_o appoint_v of_o the_o head_n of_o their_o tribe_n and_o family_n or_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o civil_a superior_n or_o of_o the_o priest_n or_o that_o the_o example_n of_o those_o wicked_a king_n may_v be_v any_o lawful_a warrant_n for_o any_o other_o king_n so_o to_o oppress_v the_o people_n and_o church_n of_o god_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xi_o when_o the_o time_n come_v that_o god_n in_o mercy_n be_v please_v to_o deliver_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o to_o place_v they_o in_o the_o land_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v they_o he_o raise_v up_o his_o servant_n moses_n and_o joshua_n to_o take_v that_o charge_n upon_o they_o 5._o and_o according_o moses_n be_v make_v their_o prince_n or_o as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v their_o king_n do_v not_o only_o by_o god_n appointment_n and_o assistance_n lead_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n but_o govern_v they_o be_v 600000_o man_n on_o foot_n beside_o woman_n and_o child_n forty_o year_n by_o his_o authority_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o joshua_n likewise_o succeed_v moses_n in_o the_o same_o princely_a power_n and_o authority_n do_v after_o many_o difficulty_n bring_v they_o into_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o give_v they_o lawful_a possession_n thereof_o so_o that_o although_o former_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v keep_v in_o such_o great_a servitude_n and_o bondage_n whilst_o they_o be_v in_o egypt_n as_o notwithstanding_o their_o number_n they_o be_v no_o way_n able_a like_o a_o free_a people_n to_o lift_v up_o their_o head_n yet_o now_o they_o be_v knit_v together_o in_o one_o body_n xuj_o and_o settle_v as_o a_o particular_a state_n and_o free_a nation_n in_o their_o own_o country_n be_v rule_v and_o govern_v successive_o after_o a_o mild_a and_o temperate_a manner_n first_o by_o moses_n in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a and_o then_o by_o joshua_n in_o canaan_n whilst_o he_o live_v can._n xi_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v deliver_v out_o of_o egypt_n by_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o not_o by_o god_n special_a direction_n and_o mighty_a power_n or_o that_o it_o have_v be_v lawful_a for_o they_o not_o warrant_v by_o god_n to_o have_v depart_v thence_o as_o they_o do_v without_o licence_n first_o obtain_v of_o king_n pharaoh_n or_o that_o moses_n and_o joshua_n be_v not_o call_v to_o that_o high_a authority_n by_o god_n himself_o but_o receive_v the_o same_o from_o the_o people_n as_o depend_v upon_o their_o choice_n or_o that_o dathan_n and_o abiram_n descend_v from_o reuben_n can_v be_v justify_v in_o challenge_v of_o moses_n that_o he_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o he_o in_o execute_v only_o that_o authority_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xii_o as_o almighty_a god_n take_v order_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o his_o people_n in_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o establish_v a_o princely_a authority_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o civil_o so_o be_v he_o no_o less_o careful_a of_o his_o church_n for_o however_o the_o priesthood_n be_v dispose_v of_o before_o this_o time_n 28._o yet_o now_o it_o be_v apparent_a in_o the_o scripture_n 8._o that_o the_o same_o be_v after_o settle_v in_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n 3_o and_o aaron_n be_v make_v xvij_o by_o god_n appointment_n for_o the_o better_a government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o chief_a and_o high_a priest_n the_o whole_a priesthood_n be_v assign_v to_o his_o child_n and_o their_o offspring_n as_o well_o to_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o say_v high_a place_n as_o also_o to_o execute_v the_o other_o inferior_a function_n belong_v to_o priest_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n be_v to_o attend_v other_o ecclesiastical_a service_n can._n xii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n be_v assign_v by_o the_o people_n to_o undertake_v the_o say_v ecclesiastical_a office_n or_o that_o aaron_n and_o his_o posterity_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o people_n to_o be_v their_o priest_n or_o that_o they_o be_v not_o choose_v direct_o by_o god_n himself_o or_o that_o the_o people_n have_v any_o lawful_a interest_n at_o any_o time_n afterward_o either_o to_o choose_v their_o priest_n or_o they_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a to_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o place_n or_o that_o corah_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n can_v be_v justify_v in_o say_v that_o aaron_n take_v too_o much_o upon_o he_o thereby_o repine_v either_o that_o aaron_n be_v rather_o make_v high_a priest_n than_o he_o himself_o or_o that_o the_o priesthood_n be_v annex_v to_o aaron_n posterity_n whereas_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o levite_n be_v to_o serve_v in_o inferior_a place_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xiii_o before_o moses_n death_n 18._o god_n have_v appoint_v joshua_n to_o succeed_v he_o but_o in_o joshua_n day_n he_o appoint_v none_o to_o follow_v he_o immediate_o whereupon_o after_o his_o death_n the_o israelite_n be_v leave_v without_o a_o chief_a head_n or_o prince_n to_o govern_v they_o they_o have_v then_o remain_v the_o particular_a officer_n and_o judge_n appoint_v by_o moses_n at_o jethro_n council_n in_o their_o several_a tribe_n as_o also_o the_o general_a senate_n of_o seventy_o elder_n ordain_v by_o god_n upon_o moses_n complaint_n over_o all_o the_o nation_n yet_o there_o fall_v very_o great_a disorder_n and_o confusion_n among_o they_o for_o want_v of_o a_o chief_a judge_n and_o governor_n whereby_o they_o may_v see_v their_o own_o disability_n and_o error_n and_o find_v by_o experience_n what_o it_o be_v to_o want_v a_o chief_a governor_n and_o furthermore_o be_v move_v when_o they_o be_v in_o distress_n to_o fly_v unto_o god_n and_o depend_v only_o upon_o he_o for_o the_o raise_n up_o of_o one_o from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o deliver_v and_o defend_v they_o and_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o people_n short_o after_o joshua_n time_n fall_v most_o strange_o into_o gross_a idolatry_n and_o be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n 13._o during_o the_o history_n of_o the_o judge_n very_o grievous_o afflict_v by_o the_o border_a nation_n and_o such_o as_o dwell_v among_o they_o when_o they_o find_v themselves_o still_o unable_a to_o withstand_v their_o enemy_n use_v any_o great_a force_n against_o they_o then_o they_o have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n recourse_n to_o god_n by_o prayer_n who_o do_v at_o such_o time_n viij_o appoint_v one_o for_o their_o prince_n chief_a captain_n and_o ruler_n to_o deliver_v they_o from_o their_o say_a enemy_n we_o say_v for_o the_o most_o part_n because_o sometime_o they_o attempt_v some_o matter_n of_o importance_n without_o seek_v any_o chief_a governor_n from_o god_n 9_o as_o at_o one_o time_n the_o people_n of_o sichem_n presume_v to_o choose_v they_o a_o prince_n of_o their_o own_o after_o gideon_n death_n which_o turn_v both_o to_o his_o ruin_n and_o their_o destruction_n and_o it_o be_v here_o general_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o when_o there_o be_v the_o great_a liberty_n among_o the_o israelite_n during_o the_o time_n from_o joshua_n to_o saul_n whatsoever_o the_o people_n think_v of_o their_o own_o course_n
have_v not_o thereby_o sin_v and_o unjust_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o god_n or_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o judah_n by_o god_n ordinance_n go_v by_o succession_n when_o one_o king_n be_v dead_a his_o heir_n be_v not_o in_o right_a their_o king_n however_o by_o some_o athaliah_n he_o may_v be_v hinder_v from_o enjoy_v it_o or_o that_o the_o people_n be_v not_o bind_v without_o any_o further_a circumstance_n upon_o sufficient_a notice_n of_o their_o former_a king_n death_n to_o have_v obey_v his_o heir_n apparent_a as_o their_o lawful_a king_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xviii_o although_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o rest_n of_o such_o as_o be_v subject_n to_o their_o prince_n judge_n and_o king_n yet_o we_o have_v think_v it_o fit_a to_o make_v the_o same_o more_o apparent_a by_o some_o particular_n aaron_n the_o chief_a priest_n xxvii_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o levite_n after_o that_o aaron_n be_v possess_v of_o the_o high_a priesthood_n be_v at_o moses_n direction_n all_o the_o time_n that_o he_o live_v and_o when_o he_o the_o say_v aaron_n have_v in_o some_o sort_n forget_v his_o duty_n to_o moses_n in_o join_v with_o his_o sister_n undutiful_o against_o he_o he_o find_v his_o offence_n therein_o and_o do_v humble_o submit_v himself_o in_o this_o sort_n to_o he_o 11._o alas_o my_o lord_n i_o beseech_v thou_o lay_v not_o this_o sin_n upon_o we_o which_o we_o have_v foolish_o commit_v it_o be_v likewise_o manifest_a in_o the_o book_n of_o joshua_n that_o eleazar_n who_o succeed_v aaron_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n under_o he_o dispose_v of_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o service_n as_o joshua_n their_o prince_n and_o governor_n do_v command_v they_o and_o how_o obedient_a and_o humble_a both_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n and_o the_o prophet_n themselves_o be_v to_o their_o king_n the_o example_n of_o zadok_n jehojadah_fw-mi azariah_n helchiah_n nathan_n and_o divers_a other_o do_v declare_v they_o submit_v themselves_o to_o their_o direction_n and_o when_o they_o come_v into_o their_o presence_n make_v obeisance_n before_o they_o upon_o their_o face_n to_o the_o ground_n likewise_o have_v office_n distribute_v and_o assign_v several_o unto_o they_o by_o sundry_a king_n they_o execute_v the_o same_o in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o temple_n according_o and_o as_o while_o they_o do_v their_o duty_n they_o be_v cherish_v so_o upon_o any_o notorious_a offence_n commit_v by_o they_o they_o be_v censure_v and_o punish_v 35._o solomon_n depose_v abiathar_n from_o the_o high_a priesthood_n and_o place_v zadok_n in_o his_o room_n and_o josiah_n likewise_o thrust_v all_o the_o priest_n from_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o jerusalem_n 5._o who_o have_v burn_v incense_n in_o the_o high_a place_n xxviii_o placet_fw-la eye_n can._n xviii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o as_o right_o and_o proper_o subject_n to_o the_o civil_a governor_n as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n or_o that_o when_o they_o any_o way_n offend_v they_o may_v not_o be_v punish_v as_o lawful_o by_o they_o as_o any_o other_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xix_o as_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o people_n that_o when_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n be_v to_o succeed_v one_o another_o their_o duty_n be_v to_o come_v together_o with_o joy_n and_o gladness_n to_o receive_v they_o for_o their_o king_n as_o send_v unto_o they_o as_o from_o god_n himself_o and_o according_o to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o their_o authority_n and_o government_n so_o at_o such_o time_n the_o priest_n for_o the_o most_o part_n beside_o their_o general_a duty_n as_o subject_n have_v some_o further_a service_n to_o be_v then_o by_o they_o perform_v the_o part_n of_o which_o service_n be_v all_o of_o they_o manifest_v in_o the_o advancement_n of_o king_n solomon_n to_o the_o royal_a throne_n of_o his_o father_n king_n david_n etc._n where_o the_o priest_n by_o king_n david_n direction_n do_v give_v thanks_o to_o god_n and_o pray_v for_o king_n solomon_n they_o offer_v the_o people_n sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o their_o new_a king_n and_o zadok_v the_o high_a priest_n do_v himself_o anoint_v he_o howbeit_o this_o their_o service_n thus_o by_o they_o perform_v do_v neither_o give_v to_o king_n solomon_n any_o right_a or_o title_n to_o succeed_v his_o father_n nor_o to_o themselves_o any_o privilege_n or_o exemption_n from_o their_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o he_o 7._o abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n do_v anoint_v adoniah_n to_o have_v succeed_v king_n david_n eye_n and_o no_o duty_n of_o likelihood_n be_v omit_v which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o such_o a_o solemn_a action_n xxix_o but_o thereby_o adoniah_n receive_v nothing_o but_o a_o badge_n of_o treason_n against_o the_o king_n his_o father_n which_o he_o carry_v with_o he_o to_o his_o grave_n and_o zadok_v the_o high_a priest_n notwithstanding_o that_o he_o have_v anoint_v king_n solomon_n be_v afterward_o as_o much_o subject_n and_o as_o dutiful_a unto_o he_o as_o he_o have_v be_v before_o unto_o his_o father_n king_n david_n nay_o the_o great_a the_o service_n be_v of_o any_o person_n to_o their_o sovereign_n the_o great_a be_v and_o so_o ought_v to_o be_v their_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o they_o can._n xix_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o adoniah_n be_v ever_o lawful_o king_n of_o the_o israelite_n because_o abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n have_v anoint_v he_o or_o that_o king_n solomon_n receive_v from_o zadok_n or_o from_o the_o holy_a oil_n which_o he_o pour_v upon_o his_o head_n any_o interest_n to_o his_o father_n kingly_a seat_n which_o he_o have_v not_o before_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o his_o father_n appointment_n or_o that_o abiathar_n may_v not_o just_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o a_o traitor_n in_o that_o he_o anoint_v adoniah_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a the_o right_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v then_o in_o king_n david_n and_o in_o he_o by_o god_n appointment_n to_o be_v dispose_v of_o and_o bestow_v upon_o his_o young_a son_n solomon_n or_o that_o it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o traitorous_a offence_n in_o zadok_n thirty_o if_o be_v command_v thereupon_o by_o king_n david_n to_o anoint_v king_n solomon_n he_o shall_v have_v refuse_v so_o to_o have_v do_v or_o that_o either_o zadok_n or_o any_o other_o priest_n who_o afterward_o according_a to_o their_o duty_n anoint_v the_o king_n of_o judah_n be_v thereby_o more_o exempt_v from_o their_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n unto_o they_o than_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n by_o their_o joy_n and_o applause_n when_o their_o king_n be_v new_o advance_v to_o their_o kingdom_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xx._n as_o it_o be_v apparent_a in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o israelite_n general_o as_o well_o the_o priest_n as_o the_o people_n be_v equal_o bind_v as_o subject_n personal_o to_o honour_n reverence_n and_o obey_v their_o king_n so_o be_v it_o there_o also_o as_o manifest_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o sovereign_n over_o they_o do_v not_o only_o extend_v to_o civil_a cause_n but_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a for_o as_o it_o be_v then_o the_o duty_n of_o parent_n so_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v it_o of_o good_a king_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n and_o subject_n in_o the_o true_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n as_o have_v a_o care_n commit_v unto_o they_o not_o only_o of_o their_o body_n but_o likewise_o of_o their_o soul_n in_o which_o respect_n the_o chief_a charge_n that_o all_o subject_n and_o inferior_a person_n of_o what_o condition_n soever_o shall_v diligent_o observe_v the_o say_a law_n of_o nature_n be_v the_o very_a same_o in_o substance_n that_o god_n write_v with_o his_o own_o finger_n give_v unto_o moses_n and_o style_v by_o the_o name_n of_o his_o ten_o commandment_n be_v principal_o impose_v upon_o king_n and_o civil_a ruler_n they_o be_v to_o provide_v that_o their_o subject_n have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o he_o who_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n xxix_o that_o they_o make_v to_o themselves_o no_o grave_v image_n nor_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o nor_o worship_v they_o that_o they_o do_v careful_o meet_v at_o certain_a time_n to_o serve_v honour_n and_o magnify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v negligent_a in_o the_o observe_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o commandment_n and_o albeit_o through_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n both_o king_n and_o subject_n be_v become_v unable_a so_o to_o perform_v these_o their_o duty_n of_o piety_n
may_v then_o lawful_o command_v and_o do_v what_o they_o list_v in_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o priesthood_n from_o the_o regal_a principality_n the_o same_o have_v be_v former_o in_o one_o person_n they_o be_v then_o so_o by_o god_n distinguish_v as_o in_o some_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o office_n of_o king_n no_o priest_n as_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n have_v any_o authority_n to_o intermeddle_v as_o in_o some_o other_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o office_n of_o priest_n no_o king_n as_o he_o be_v a_o king_n may_v lawful_o be_v a_o actor_n both_o of_o they_o have_v their_o bound_n and_o limit_n appoint_v unto_o they_o by_o god_n which_o without_o sin_n they_o may_v not_o exceed_v and_o therefore_o as_o we_o great_o blame_v the_o highpriest_n 11._o vriah_n for_o obey_v the_o wicked_a command_n of_o king_n ahaz_n in_o building_n by_o his_o direction_n a_o altar_n in_o the_o temple_n according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o one_o that_o be_v in_o damascus_n 17._o so_o do_v we_o great_o commend_v the_o godly_a zeal_n of_o azariah_n the_o highpriest_n and_o of_o eighty_o other_o priest_n that_o be_v with_o he_o in_o withstand_v as_o far_o as_o lawful_o they_o may_v vzziah_n king_n of_o judah_n when_o in_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n he_o go_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o will_v have_v burn_v incense_n upon_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n which_o none_o may_v lawful_o do_v but_o priest_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o they_o do_v not_o withstand_v the_o king_n by_o force_n or_o army_n but_o tell_v he_o that_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o he_o xxxvij_o but_o to_o the_o priest_n to_o burn_v incense_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o urge_v he_o to_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n howbeit_o the_o king_n be_v angry_a with_o they_o for_o the_o same_o persist_v as_o it_o appear_z in_o his_o former_a purpose_n and_o have_v incense_n in_o his_o hand_n will_v have_v burn_v it_o upon_o the_o altar_n if_o god_n himself_o have_v not_o strike_v he_o in_o the_o forehead_n with_o a_o leprosy_n wherewith_o be_v terrify_v as_o also_o with_o a_o great_a earthquake_n then_o happen_v as_o some_o learned_a man_n have_v write_v from_o amos_n 1._o 1._o he_o be_v constrain_v not_o only_o to_o desist_v from_o that_o rashness_n and_o to_o depart_v hasty_o out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n but_o likewise_o as_o a_o leper_n to_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n apart_o according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o jotham_n his_o son_n 21._o as_o viceroy_n rule_v his_o father_n house_n and_o judge_v the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n vzziah_n himself_o during_o his_o life_n remain_v king_n can._n xxii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o uriah_n the_o high_a priest_n be_v bind_v to_o have_v build_v the_o say_a altar_n because_o king_n ahaz_n do_v command_v he_o or_o that_o azariah_n and_o the_o other_o priest_n do_v amiss_o in_o reprove_v king_n uzziah_n so_o plain_o or_o that_o they_o lawful_o may_v have_v use_v any_o violence_n or_o force_n against_o the_o king_n person_n either_o in_o hinder_v he_o from_o burn_v of_o incense_n or_o in_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o the_o temple_n or_o in_o compel_v he_o to_o dwell_v apart_o in_o a_o house_n as_o he_o do_v though_o he_o be_v a_o leper_n if_o he_o have_v not_o of_o himself_o yield_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n in_o that_o behalf_n xxxviij_o or_o that_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n either_o by_o the_o say_a stroke_n of_o god_n or_o by_o his_o dwell_n in_o a_o house_n apart_o or_o that_o any_o thing_n which_o the_o priest_n than_o do_v may_v have_v be_v a_o lawful_a warrant_n to_o any_o priest_n afterward_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n either_o to_o have_v depose_v by_o sentence_n any_o of_o their_o king_n from_o their_o kingdom_n for_o the_o like_a offence_n or_o to_o have_v use_v arm_n or_o repress_v such_o their_o unlawful_a attempt_n by_o forcible_a way_n though_o they_o have_v imagine_v the_o same_o may_v have_v tend_v to_o the_o preservation_n of_o religion_n or_o that_o either_o before_o that_o time_n or_o afterward_o any_o priest_n do_v resist_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n or_o depose_v any_o of_o the_o king_n either_o of_o israel_n or_o of_o judah_n from_o their_o kingdom_n though_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n all_o of_o they_o and_o fourteen_o of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n be_v open_a and_o plain_a idolater_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxiii_o we_o have_v show_v before_o that_o king_n solomon_n do_v lawful_o depose_v abiathar_n from_o the_o priesthood_n and_o place_v zadok_n in_o his_o room_n but_o that_o any_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o likewise_o we_o have_v before_o declare_v do_v ever_o depose_v from_o their_o crown_n any_o of_o their_o king_n how_o wicked_a soever_o or_o have_v any_o authority_n so_o to_o do_v it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v howbeit_o one_o example_n of_o jehoiada_n 1._o the_o highpriest_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v consider_v after_o the_o death_n of_o ahaziah_n king_n of_o judah_n his_o mother_n athaliah_n find_v his_o child_n to_o be_v very_o young_a kill_v they_o all_o but_o the_o young_a and_o reign_v by_o usurpation_n six_o year_n over_o the_o land_n the_o say_v young_a child_n who_o name_n be_v joash_n be_v secret_o convey_v away_o by_o his_o aunt_n jehoshabeth_n his_o father_n sister_n and_o the_o wife_n of_o jehoiada_n the_o highpriest_n who_o keep_v he_o so_o secret_o in_o the_o temple_n thirty-nine_o as_o that_o athaliah_n the_o usurper_n can_v never_o hear_v of_o he_o now_o after_o the_o say_v six_o year_n that_o joash_n the_o true_a and_o natural_a heir_n apparent_a to_o the_o crown_n have_v be_v so_o bring_v up_o he_o the_o say_a jehoiada_n be_v the_o king_n uncle_n and_o the_o chief_a head_n or_o prince_n of_o his_o tribe_n send_v through_o judah_n for_o the_o levite_n and_o chief_a father_n both_o of_o judah_n and_o of_o benjamin_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o to_o jerusalem_n who_o according_o repair_v thither_o and_o be_v make_v acquaint_v by_o he_o with_o the_o preservation_n of_o their_o prince_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n will_n that_o he_o shall_v reign_v over_o they_o they_o altogether_o by_o a_o covenant_n acknowledge_v their_o allegiance_n unto_o he_o as_o unto_o their_o lawful_a king_n and_o so_o dispose_v of_o thing_n as_o present_o after_o he_o be_v crown_v and_o anoint_a which_o dutiful_a office_n of_o subject_n be_v perform_v they_o apprehend_v the_o usurper_n athaliah_n and_o slay_v she_o as_o before_o it_o be_v by_o the_o say_a state_n resolve_v in_o all_o the_o process_n of_o which_o action_n nothing_o be_v do_v either_o by_o jehoiada_n the_o highpriest_n or_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o people_n of_o judah_n and_o benjamin_n which_o god_n himself_o do_v not_o require_v at_o their_o hand_n joash_n their_o late_a king_n son_n be_v then_o their_o only_a natural_a lord_n and_o sovereign_n although_o athaliah_n keep_v he_o for_o six_o year_n from_o the_o possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n can._n xxiii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o athaliah_n do_v well_o in_o murder_v her_o son_n child_n or_o that_o jehoiada_n and_o his_o wife_n do_v amiss_o in_o preserve_v the_o life_n of_o their_o king_n joash_n or_o that_o athaliah_n be_v not_o a_o tyrannical_a usurper_n the_o right_a heir_n of_o that_o kingdom_n be_v alive_a or_o that_o it_o be_v neither_o lawful_a for_o jehoiada_n xl_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prince_n levite_n and_o people_n to_o have_v yield_v their_o subjection_n unto_o their_o lawful_a king_n nor_o have_v so_o do_v and_o their_o king_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o his_o crown_n to_o have_v join_v together_o for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o athaliah_n the_o usurper_n or_o that_o jehoiada_n the_o highpriest_n be_v not_o bind_v as_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n both_o to_o inform_v the_o prince_n and_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n promise_n that_o joash_n shall_v reign_v over_o they_o and_o likewise_o to_o anoint_v he_o or_o that_o this_o fact_n either_o of_o the_o prince_n priest_n or_o people_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v for_o a_o lawful_a warrant_n for_o any_o afterward_o either_o prince_n priest_n or_o people_n to_o have_v depose_v any_o of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n who_o by_o right_a of_o succession_n come_v to_o their_o crown_n or_o to_o have_v kill_v they_o for_o any_o respect_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o have_v set_v another_o in_o their_o place_n according_a to_o their_o own_o choice_n or_o that_o either_o this_o example_n of_o jehoiada_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v give_v then_o unto_o the_o highpriest_n any_o authority_n to_o dispute_v determine_v or_o judge_n whether_o the_o child_n of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n shall_v
either_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o crown_n because_o their_o father_n be_v idolater_n or_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v depose_v from_o it_o in_o that_o respect_n or_o in_o any_o other_o respect_n whatsoever_o he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxiv_o almighty_a god_n foresee_v what_o defect_n there_o will_v be_v sometime_o in_o king_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o sometime_o not_o only_o in_o the_o inferior_a priest_n but_o likewise_o in_o the_o high-priest_n themselves_o do_v still_o as_o occasion_n require_v and_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o church_n raise_v up_o and_o send_v unto_o they_o his_o prophet_n man_n endue_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n with_o extraordinary_a authority_n knowledge_n zeal_n and_o courage_n who_o neither_o fear_v king_n nor_o priest_n but_o tell_v they_o plain_o of_o their_o fault_n denounce_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o they_o for_o their_o sin_n xli_o and_o execute_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n such_o other_o part_n of_o their_o duty_n as_o god_n himself_o immediate_o give_v they_o in_o charge_n notwithstanding_o the_o priest_n stand_v much_o upon_o their_o authority_n and_o brag_v that_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o perish_v from_o they_o 18._o flatter_v themselves_o and_o the_o people_n with_o lie_a word_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o people_n speech_n teach_v most_o likely_a by_o they_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n 4._o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o the_o prophet_n tell_v they_o plain_o that_o they_o err_v that_o they_o be_v covetous_a receiver_n of_o gift_n and_o false_a dealer_n that_o they_o have_v pollute_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o the_o law_n shall_v perish_v from_o they_o that_o god_n himself_o have_v find_v their_o wickedness_n in_o his_o own_o house_n that_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v destroy_v and_o that_o they_o themselves_o shall_v be_v carry_v into_o captivity_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o their_o faithful_a bold_a and_o plain_a deal_n according_a to_o god_n commandment_n and_o particular_a direction_n the_o priest_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n great_o move_v and_o incense_v against_o they_o 2._o pashur_n the_o highpriest_n strike_v the_o prophet_n jeremy_n upon_o the_o face_n and_o afterward_o cast_v he_o into_o prison_n also_o his_o death_n be_v conspire_v among_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o rest_n from_o time_n to_o time_n be_v little_o better_a treat_v by_o they_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o be_v in_o those_o time_n very_a many_o false_a prophet_n who_o pretend_v that_o they_o likewise_o be_v send_v from_o god_n do_v great_o trouble_v that_o church_n and_o state_n but_o their_o falsehood_n and_o lewdness_n ought_v neither_o to_o have_v prejudice_v the_o good_a priest_n nor_o the_o true_a prophet_n can._n xxiv_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n from_o the_o high_a to_o the_o low_a be_v not_o bind_v to_o have_v obey_v the_o direction_n which_o god_n himself_o deliver_v unto_o they_o by_o his_o prophet_n notwithstanding_o that_o now_o and_o then_o some_o of_o they_o be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n xlii_o and_o consequent_o in_o other_o cause_n be_v subject_a unto_o they_o or_o that_o the_o example_n of_o the_o true_a prophet_n be_v any_o lawful_a warrant_n either_o for_o any_o false_a prophet_n or_o for_o any_o other_o person_n or_o person_n whatsoever_o to_o have_v rail_v libel_v threaten_v or_o denounce_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o any_o of_o the_o say_a priest_n according_a to_o their_o own_o malicious_a humour_n god_fw-we himself_o have_v never_o give_v they_o any_o such_o warrant_n or_o foreknowledge_n to_o pronounce_v of_o such_o particular_a judgement_n to_o come_v or_o that_o because_o the_o highpriest_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n do_v amiss_o in_o the_o malicious_a prosecution_n of_o god_n true_a prophet_n they_o may_v not_o therefore_o lawful_o take_v order_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o false_a prophet_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxv_o it_o be_v apparent_a likewise_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o as_o the_o godly_a prophet_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n deal_v with_o the_o priest_n so_o do_v they_o in_o like_a manner_n deal_v with_o their_o king_n although_o otherwise_o they_o be_v their_o subject_n and_o owe_v they_o as_o much_o duty_n as_o any_o other_o 12._o nathan_n the_o prophet_n by_o god_n particular_a direction_n spare_v not_o king_n david_n to_o tell_v he_o of_o his_o offence_n 14._o no_o more_o do_v abijah_n 18._o jeroboam_n nor_o elias_n king_n ahab_n they_o denounce_v god_n judgement_n bold_o against_o they_o and_o according_o they_o come_v to_o pass_v also_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o those_o law_n which_o he_o prescribe_v other_o to_o observe_v 16._o command_v jehu_n a_o subject_a to_o be_v anoint_v king_n over_o israel_n 3._o of_o purpose_n to_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o ahab_n and_o jezabel_n and_o according_o elizeus_fw-la the_o prophet_n cause_v jehu_n to_o be_v anoint_v and_o god_n message_n to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o who_o present_o upon_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n will_n and_o the_o submission_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o captain_n of_o israel_n unto_o he_o 13._o as_o to_o their_o lawful_a king_n do_v put_v in_o execution_n the_o say_a message_n by_o kill_a joram_n before_o that_o time_n his_o sovereign_n xliii_o but_o then_o his_o subject_n and_o by_o destroy_v and_o root_n out_o the_o whole_a posterity_n son_n familiar_n and_o priest_n of_o ahab_n in_o like_a manner_n samuel_n a_o prophet_n but_o the_o subject_n of_o king_n saul_n do_v not_o refuse_v when_o god_n direct_o and_o in_o express_a term_n bid_v he_o both_o to_o tell_v his_o master_n the_o king_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v rend_v the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n from_o he_o 28._o and_o to_o anoint_v king_n david_n to_o succeed_v he_o we_o say_v to_o succeed_v he_o because_o we_o think_v that_o god_n purpose_n only_o be_v to_o cut_v off_o saul_n posterity_n from_o reign_v after_o he_o and_o not_o actual_o while_o he_o live_v to_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o principal_o to_o provide_v that_o david_n may_v succeed_v he_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o david_n lie_v not_o when_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v anoint_v to_o succeed_v king_n saul_n 6._o yet_o he_o call_v he_o his_o master_n and_o the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v also_o he_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v keep_v he_o from_o lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o king_n saul_n for_o that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n anoint_v likewise_o when_o one_o of_o the_o captain_n will_v have_v slay_v king_n saul_n 9_o he_o say_v destroy_v he_o not_o for_o who_o can_v lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v and_o be_v guiltless_a furthermore_o when_o the_o messenger_n bring_v he_o news_n of_o saul_n death_n 14._o be_v it_o thou_o not_o afraid_a quoth_v he_o to_o put_v forth_o thy_o hand_n to_o destroy_v the_o anoint_a of_o the_o lord_n and_o command_v the_o say_a messenger_n to_o be_v kill_v for_o his_o offence_n therein_o thy_o blood_n say_v david_n be_v upon_o thy_o own_o head_n for_o thy_o own_o mouth_n have_v witness_v against_o thou_o say_v i_o have_v slay_v the_o lord_n anointed_n beside_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n account_v saul_n to_o be_v their_o lawful_a king_n xliv_o during_o his_o life_n and_o also_o that_o they_o construe_v samuel_n word_n to_o be_v mean_v only_o of_o david_n interest_n to_o succeed_v he_o after_o his_o death_n and_o samuel_n himself_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o he_o have_v do_v be_v by_o god_n commandment_n leave_v the_o success_n thereof_o to_o the_o disposition_n of_o his_o heavenly_a providence_n and_o afterward_o 31._o both_o honour_a saul_n before_o the_o people_n as_o his_o king_n and_o likewise_o continue_v whilst_o he_o live_v a_o dutiful_a subject_n unto_o he_o can._n xxv_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o blame_v for_o deal_v so_o sharp_o with_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v their_o sovereign_n as_o though_o god_n express_a commandment_n have_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v authorize_v they_o so_o to_o have_v deal_v or_o that_o the_o example_n of_o god_n prophet_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o any_o false_a prophet_n or_o other_o lewd_a person_n to_o have_v rail_v and_o libel_v against_o their_o king_n or_o to_o have_v denounce_v such_o judgement_n against_o they_o as_o they_o in_o malice_n either_o desire_v or_o vain_o imagine_v or_o that_o any_o prophet_n priest_n or_o other_o person_n have_v no_o direct_a and_o express_a command_n from_o god_n may_v lawful_o imitate_v the_o say_v fact_n either_o of_o samuel_n or_o of_o elizeus_fw-la in_o anoint_v and_o design_v successor_n to_o king_n which_o otherwise_o have_v no_o
just_a interest_n title_n and_o claim_n to_o their_o kingdom_n or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o captain_n or_o subject_n high_a or_o low_o whosoever_o to_o bear_v arm_n against_o their_o sovereign_n or_o to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o his_o sacred_a person_n by_o the_o example_n of_o jehu_n notwithstanding_o that_o any_o prophet_n or_o priest_n shall_v incite_v they_o thereunto_o by_o unction_n xlv_o or_o any_o other_o mean_n whatsoever_o except_o first_o that_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v now_o any_o such_o prophet_n send_v extraordinary_o from_o god_n himself_o with_o sufficient_a and_o special_a authority_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o that_o every_o such_o captain_n and_o subject_n so_o incite_v may_v be_v assure_v that_o god_n himself_o have_v in_o express_a word_n and_o by_o name_n require_v and_o command_v he_o so_o to_o do_v he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxvi_o furthermore_o that_o nothing_o may_v be_v omit_v concern_v the_o authority_n and_o dignity_n of_o god_n prophet_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o jeremy_n in_o that_o behalf_n be_v with_o due_a care_n and_o diligence_n 10._o to_o be_v observe_v behold_v say_v the_o lord_n i_o have_v set_v thou_o over_o the_o nation_n and_o over_o the_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v pluck_v up_o and_o root_v out_o and_o destroy_v and_o throw_v down_o and_o build_v and_o plant_v now_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n do_v at_o any_o time_n as_o a_o warrior_n and_o great_a emperor_n dispose_v of_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n or_o pluck_v up_o root_v out_o destroy_v or_o throw_v down_o king_n or_o that_o he_o build_v or_o choose_v or_o set_v up_o king_n in_o the_o place_n of_o those_o that_o he_o have_v depose_v or_o throw_v down_o the_o ancient_a writer_n do_v deliver_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o say_a word_n when_o they_o expound_v they_o in_o sort_n and_o effect_n as_o follow_v i_o have_v set_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o be_v i_o have_v impose_v upon_o thou_o the_o office_n of_o prophesy_v not_o only_o against_o the_o people_n and_o kingdom_n of_o judah_n but_o likewise_o against_o the_o nation_n and_o empire_n xlvi_o viz._n the_o ammonite_n the_o moabite_n the_o egyptian_n and_o the_o babylonian_n etc._n etc._n that_o thou_o may_v pluck_v up_o root_n out_o destroy_v and_o throw_v down_o that_o be_v that_o thou_o may_v pronounce_v that_o wicked_a nation_n shall_v be_v pull_v or_o carry_v away_o out_o of_o their_o own_o province_n and_o that_o thou_o may_v prophesy_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v or_o kill_v and_o disperse_v in_o divers_a place_n or_o consume_v that_o thou_o may_v build_v and_o plant_v that_o be_v that_o thou_o may_v declare_v that_o both_o the_o jew_n and_o other_o nation_n shall_v after_o a_o just_a and_o due_a castigation_n be_v repair_v and_o restore_v to_o their_o own_o proper_a country_n so_o that_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o like_a manner_n although_o they_o be_v choose_v of_o god_n to_o denounce_v to_o wicked_a person_n country_n kingdom_n and_o nation_n his_o deserve_a judgement_n for_o their_o sin_n yet_o be_v they_o neither_o the_o worker_n nor_o the_o author_n of_o those_o judgement_n etc._n noah_n denounce_v the_o flood_n 5._o but_o it_o can_v therefore_o be_v true_o affirm_v that_o noah_n drown_v the_o world_n 22._o daniel_n denounce_v nebuchadnezzar_n fall_n but_o it_o be_v not_o daniel_n that_o take_v his_o heart_n and_o understanding_n from_o he_o nor_o that_o make_v he_o to_o eat_v grass_n like_o a_o ox._n samuel_n denounce_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o king_n saul_n but_o samuel_n do_v not_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o even_o so_o although_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n denounce_v the_o bondage_n of_o babylon_n and_o many_o other_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o the_o say_a nation_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v either_o true_o say_v that_o jeremy_n deliver_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o judah_n into_o captivity_n or_o that_o he_o overthrow_v or_o destroy_v any_o of_o the_o rest_n only_o he_o prophesy_v as_o god_n do_v command_v he_o and_o leave_v the_o execution_n of_o such_o judgement_n to_o the_o time_n and_o person_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v design_v and_o appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n can._n xxvi_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n have_v any_o authority_n to_o depose_v king_n from_o their_o kingdom_n xlvii_o for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o bestow_v they_o upon_o other_o as_o he_o think_v fit_a or_o that_o albeit_o the_o say_a word_n be_v speak_v by_o the_o lord_n to_o jeremy_n and_o that_o he_o be_v otherwise_o a_o inferior_a priest_n have_v no_o authority_n literal_o so_o to_o cast_v down_o and_o set_v up_o king_n yet_o the_o high-priest_n man_n of_o great_a power_n and_o dignity_n may_v then_o have_v use_v king_n in_o that_o manner_n and_o sort_n according_a to_o their_o desert_n the_o benefit_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n so_o require_v or_o that_o any_o of_o the_o high_a priest_n as_o derive_v their_o authority_n either_o from_o the_o say_a word_n speak_v to_o jeremy_n or_o from_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o might_n or_o ever_o do_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o give_v this_o neighbour_n kingdom_n to_o one_o man_n and_o that_o remote_a kingdom_n to_o another_o man_n or_o to_o depose_v any_o of_o their_o own_o king_n either_o of_o judah_n or_o of_o israel_n from_o their_o kingdom_n though_o many_o of_o they_o as_o elsewhere_o we_o have_v say_v be_v exceed_o great_a idolater_n and_o sundry_a way_n stain_v with_o lamentable_a blot_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxvii_o the_o history_n of_o jehu_n beforementioned_a do_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n what_o be_v write_v of_o ahud_o one_o of_o the_o judge_n of_o israel_n we_o have_v elsewhere_o show_v that_o from_o joshua_n death_n to_o the_o time_n of_o saul_n god_n himself_o when_o his_o people_n be_v oppress_v by_o their_o border_a neighbour_n do_v still_o raise_v up_o unto_o they_o governor_n and_o leader_n call_v judge_n without_o respect_n either_o of_o any_o tribe_n xlviii_o more_o one_o than_o another_o or_o of_o the_o dignity_n of_o any_o person_n or_o of_o the_o people_n pleasure_n choice_n and_o consent_n first_o require_v but_o simple_o according_a to_o his_o own_o choice_n and_o wisdom_n in_o which_o number_n the_o say_v ahud_v be_v one_o the_o manner_n of_o who_o entrance_n into_o that_o charge_n we_o can_v not_o our_o course_n consider_v pretermit_v with_o silence_n the_o israelite_n have_v be_v eighteen_o year_n in_o subjection_n to_o the_o moabite_n as_o they_o have_v be_v a_o little_a before_o eight_o year_n to_o the_o aramite_n they_o know_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o of_o themselves_o and_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o the_o king_n who_o subject_n they_o be_v though_o indeed_o they_o be_v tyrant_n and_o therefore_o they_o cry_v unto_o the_o lord_n for_o succour_v who_o in_o compassion_n of_o their_o servitude_n and_o misery_n 15._o appoint_a othoniel_n to_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o aramite_n and_o afterward_o ahud_v from_o the_o moabite_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o which_o two_o judge_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v tell_v we_o that_o god_n raise_v they_o up_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a he_o do_v so_o and_o also_o that_o in_o such_o raise_n of_o they_o to_o their_o place_n he_o make_v they_o saviour_n to_o his_o people_n as_o the_o scripture_n speak_v give_v they_o thereby_o authority_n to_o save_v and_o redeem_v the_o israelite_n from_o the_o tyrant_n that_o oppress_v they_o without_o both_o which_o prerogative_n it_o have_v be_v altogether_o unlawful_a for_o they_o to_o have_v do_v as_o they_o do_v beside_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o when_o the_o lord_n do_v thus_o choose_v out_o and_o authorise_v the_o say_v deliverer_n and_o ruler_n he_o do_v not_o only_o give_v they_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n full_a assurance_n of_o their_o lawful_a calling_n but_o likewise_o do_v furnish_v they_o with_o such_o wisdom_n and_o courage_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o in_o those_o kind_n of_o service_n so_o as_o ahud_v at_o who_o we_o principal_o aim_v be_v thus_o both_o call_v and_o instruct_v from_o god_n xlix_o how_o he_o shall_v begin_v his_o people_n deliverance_n from_o the_o moabite_n by_o kill_v of_o eglon_n their_o king_n he_o frame_v his_o course_n according_o and_o prepare_v for_o himself_o a_o meet_a weapon_n take_v a_o fit_a opportunity_n and_o thereupon_o as_o god_n have_v direct_v he_o he_o whole_o rest_v upon_o the_o lord_n assistance_n
execute_v that_o judgement_n upon_o the_o say_a king_n and_o afterward_o so_o vanquish_v the_o moabite_n and_o subdue_v they_o under_o the_o hand_n of_o israel_n as_o the_o whole_a land_n be_v at_o rest_n from_o the_o oppression_n of_o their_o enemy_n eighty_o year_n beside_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o as_o god_n appoint_v by_o name_n and_o election_n of_o moses_n joshua_n and_o saul_n and_o after_o that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v hold_v by_o succession_n the_o very_a be_v of_o the_o king_n son_n and_o the_o true_a heir_n apparent_a after_o his_o father_n death_n give_v unto_o they_o all_o the_o actual_a interest_n right_o and_o possession_n as_o possession_n in_o those_o case_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o their_o several_a government_n to_o do_v any_o act_n or_o act_n as_o well_o before_o as_o after_o any_o subsequent_a formality_n and_o ceremony_n even_o so_o the_o say_a form_n of_o call_v the_o judge_n by_o god_n himself_o immediate_o make_v they_o also_o judge_n actual_o and_o do_v give_v unto_o they_o a_o full_a and_o absolute_a authority_n independent_a upon_o any_o but_o upon_o he_o that_o give_v it_o they_o to_o undertake_v any_o thing_n that_o by_o god_n direction_n appertain_v to_o their_o place_n l._n again_o there_o be_v one_o other_o example_n of_o jehu_n among_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n which_o we_o have_v before_o touch_v like_a unto_o this_o of_o ahud_o wherein_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o the_o say_v jehu_n be_v of_o a_o subject_n first_o make_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n before_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o have_v kill_v joram_n as_o ahud_o a_o subject_a be_v first_o make_v the_o judge_n prince_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n before_o he_o may_v have_v lawful_o kill_v king_n eglon._n both_o which_o example_n be_v but_o in_o number_n two_o throughout_o the_o history_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n judge_n and_o king_n either_o of_o judah_n or_o israel_n do_v make_v it_o know_v unto_o we_o that_o although_o the_o lord_n both_o may_v and_o be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v any_o king_n or_o emperor_n notwithstanding_o any_o claim_n right_a title_n or_o interest_n which_o they_o can_v challenge_v to_o their_o country_n kingdom_n or_o empire_n yet_o foresee_v in_o his_o heavenly_a wisdom_n and_o divine_a providence_n what_o mischief_n private_a man_n under_o colour_n of_o these_o example_n may_v otherwise_o have_v pretend_v or_o attempt_v against_o their_o sovereign_n as_o be_v either_o discontent_v of_o themselves_o or_o set_v into_o some_o fury_n by_o other_o malicious_a person_n he_o do_v so_o order_n and_o dispose_v of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o these_o such_o his_o extraordinary_a judgement_n as_o that_o thereby_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v to_o any_o that_o shall_v not_o wilful_o hoodwink_v himself_o never_o to_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o li._n upon_o pretence_n of_o any_o revelation_n inspiration_n or_o commandment_n from_o his_o divine_a majesty_n either_o to_o touch_v the_o person_n of_o his_o sovereign_n or_o to_o bear_v arm_n against_o he_o except_o god_n shall_v first_o advance_v the_o say_a person_n from_o his_o private_a estate_n and_o make_v he_o a_o king_n or_o a_o absolute_a prince_n to_o succeed_v his_o late_a master_n in_o his_o kingdom_n or_o principality_n can._n xxvii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o any_o godly_a or_o dutiful_a subject_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v ever_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n spirit_n account_v this_o fact_n of_o ahud_v to_o be_v a_o lawful_a warrant_n for_o he_o to_o have_v murder_v the_o king_n under_o who_o subjection_n he_o live_v for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v have_v never_o so_o many_o motion_n in_o his_o heart_n thereunto_o or_o that_o the_o highpriest_n himself_o or_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o then_o live_v join_v together_o with_o he_o can_v have_v give_v authority_n to_o any_o person_n bear_v a_o subject_a to_o have_v so_o deal_v with_o his_o sovereign_n though_o he_o have_v be_v never_o so_o wicked_a and_o that_o such_o his_o death_n may_v have_v avail_v the_o church_n in_o their_o opinion_n never_o so_o great_o or_o that_o either_o the_o say_a highpriest_n and_o all_o his_o consistory_n of_o priest_n may_v lawful_o have_v encourage_v any_o who_o be_v bear_v subject_n shall_v have_v pretend_v in_o their_o zeal_n towards_o religion_n never_o so_o many_o illumination_n direction_n or_o commandment_n from_o god_n to_o have_v lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o their_o king_n the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v iii._o for_o their_o proceed_n in_o that_o course_n or_o that_o any_o person_n bear_v a_o subject_a and_o affirm_v by_o all_o the_o argument_n which_o wit_n or_o learning_n can_v devise_v that_o god_n have_v call_v he_o to_o murder_v the_o king_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la under_o who_o he_o live_v yea_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v first_o procure_v himself_o to_o be_v proclaim_v and_o anoint_a king_n as_o adonijah_n do_v and_o shall_v afterward_o have_v lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o his_o master_n aught_o therefore_o to_o have_v be_v believe_v of_o any_o that_o fear_v god_n except_o which_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v first_o prove_v his_o credit_n in_o so_o affirm_v to_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o man_n be_v bind_v as_o strict_o to_o believe_v he_o in_o say_v that_o god_n call_v and_o stir_v he_o up_o to_o the_o perpetrate_a of_o that_o fact_n as_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o instinct_n the_o scripture_n be_v write_v when_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o god_n raise_v up_o ahud_o for_o a_o saviour_n to_o his_o people_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxviii_o hitherto_o in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o that_o mild_a and_o temperate_a monarchical_a government_n which_o it_o please_v god_n to_o establish_v among_o his_o own_o people_n the_o duty_n of_o inferior_a person_n and_o subject_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v ever_o obedience_n they_o neither_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o choose_v their_o governor_n nor_o to_o bear_v arm_n against_o they_o howbeit_o it_o happen_v otherwise_o among_o some_o other_o nation_n liij_o nimrod_n not_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o portion_n which_o by_o noah_n general_a direction_n appertain_v unto_o he_o can_v never_o have_v erect_v his_o tyrannical_a government_n if_o a_o number_n of_o rebellious_a and_o discontent_a person_n have_v not_o cleaved_a unto_o he_o as_o the_o factious_a sichemite_n do_v to_o abimelech_n and_o make_v he_o their_o king_n the_o roman_n have_v king_n rebel_v against_o they_o and_o take_v the_o government_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n the_o execution_n whereof_o do_v trouble_v they_o exceed_o sometime_o they_o commit_v it_o to_o many_o and_o sometime_o to_o few_o their_o two_o annual_a consul_n please_v they_o long_o but_o at_o the_o last_o they_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o have_v a_o dictator_n till_o in_o the_o end_n julius_z caesar_z and_o augustus_n reduce_v their_o government_n again_o into_o a_o monarchy_n and_o as_o the_o roman_n deal_v with_o their_o king_n so_o do_v the_o people_n in_o some_o other_o country_n with_o their_o governor_n whereupon_o divers_a other_o kind_n of_o government_n term_v according_a to_o their_o temper_n aristocratical_a political_n tyrannical_a oligarchical_a or_o democratical_a etc._n etc._n be_v afterward_o settle_v in_o many_o place_n the_o inconvenience_n of_o which_o form_n of_o government_n be_v find_v upon_o many_o occasion_n oftentimes_o to_o be_v very_o great_a the_o people_n have_v be_v drive_v of_o necessity_n in_o sundry_a country_n to_o frame_v they_o again_o as_o near_o as_o they_o can_v to_o the_o monarchical_a government_n either_o by_o elect_v to_o themselves_o king_n upon_o certain_a condition_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o liv_o or_o by_o appointment_n of_o duke_n or_o prince_n to_o be_v the_o manager_n of_o their_o chief_a affair_n according_a as_o they_o themselves_o shall_v direct_v they_o beside_o as_o the_o say_v rebellious_a humour_n of_o the_o people_n decline_v from_o their_o obedience_n do_v in_o many_o country_n alter_v that_o temperate_a and_o fatherly_a government_n which_o noah_n have_v prescribe_v unto_o his_o offspring_n and_o which_o god_n himself_o establish_v afterward_o among_o his_o own_o people_n so_o do_v the_o ambitious_a and_o insatiable_a disposition_n of_o sundry_a no_o less_o elsewhere_o impeach_v the_o same_o as_o by_o the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n it_o be_v most_o apparent_a 2._o in_o all_o which_o abberration_n from_o the_o say_v mild_a and_o temperate_a government_n 4._o before_o specify_v almighty_a god_n who_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o any_o nation_n or_o country_n alter_v their_o government_n and_o governor_n transfer_v set_v up_o and_o bestow_v kingdom_n as_o it_o seem_v best_a to_o his_o heavenly_a wisdom_n do_v ever_o by_o his_o foresight_n and_o providence_n so_o
dispose_v both_o the_o rebellion_n of_o subject_n and_o the_o malice_n and_o greediness_n of_o encroach_a king_n upon_o their_o neighbour_n as_o albeit_o such_o their_o attempt_n of_o all_o sort_n be_v in_o themselves_o very_o wicked_a and_o detestable_a in_o his_o sight_n yet_o he_o have_v the_o skill_n to_o bring_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n and_o to_o use_v wicked_a instrument_n and_o action_n for_o a_o good_a purpose_n do_v always_o frame_v and_o apply_v they_o to_o execute_v his_o own_o just_a judgement_n lv_o when_o the_o sin_n of_o a_o nation_n but_o principal_o of_o his_o own_o people_n be_v of_o that_o nature_n height_n and_o ripeness_n as_o his_o justice_n can_v not_o fit_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n by_o any_o other_o but_o by_o the_o wicked_a for_o example_n in_o the_o overthrow_v of_o jerusalem_n god_n own_a city_n in_o burn_v of_o the_o temple_n that_o be_v the_o place_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o carry_v his_o own_o people_n into_o captivity_n though_o never_o so_o much_o by_o they_o deserve_v no_o godly_a king_n can_v well_o have_v be_v employ_v but_o such_o a_o one_o only_o as_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o which_o their_o employment_n such_o wicked_a instrument_n to_o execute_v god_n just_a judgement_n 6._o be_v call_v sometime_o his_o servant_n 5._o and_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o wrath_n or_o as_o attila_n term_v himself_o the_o scourge_n of_o god_n and_o when_o have_v attain_v their_o ungodly_a desire_n whether_o ambitious_a king_n by_o bring_v any_o country_n into_o their_o subjection_n or_o disloyal_a subject_n by_o their_o rebellious_a rise_n against_o their_o natural_a sovereign_n they_o have_v establish_v any_o of_o the_o say_v degenerate_a form_n of_o government_n among_o their_o people_n the_o authority_n either_o so_o unjust_o get_v or_o wring_v by_o force_n from_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a possessor_n be_v always_o god_n authority_n and_o therefore_o receive_v no_o impeachment_n by_o the_o wickedness_n of_o those_o that_o have_v it_o be_v ever_o when_o any_o such_o alteration_n be_v thorough_o settle_v to_o be_v reverence_v and_o obey_v and_o the_o people_n of_o all_o sort_n as_o well_o of_o the_o clergy_n lvi_o as_o of_o the_o laity_n be_v to_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o not_o only_o for_o fear_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n the_o israelite_n in_o egypt_n after_o joseph_n death_n be_v oppress_v very_o tyrannical_o many_o way_n do_v never_o rebel_v against_o any_o of_o those_o king_n but_o submit_v themselves_o to_o their_o authority_n though_o their_o burden_n be_v very_o intolerable_a both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o impossible_a work_n impose_v upon_o they_o and_o because_o also_o they_o may_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o lord_n a_o special_a part_n of_o god_n worship_n without_o apparent_a danger_n of_o ston_a to_o death_n beside_o it_o may_v not_o be_v omit_v when_o god_n himself_o send_v moses_n to_o deliver_v they_o from_o that_o servitude_n he_o will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o carry_v they_o thence_o till_o pharaoh_n their_o king_n give_v they_o licence_n to_o depart_v afterwards_o also_o when_o the_o jew_n be_v bring_v into_o subjection_n to_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n do_v by_o the_o instigation_n of_o false_a prophet_n rebel_n against_o they_o they_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n great_o condemn_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n and_o in_o their_o captivity_n which_o short_o after_o follow_v they_o live_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o say_a prophet_n in_o great_a subjection_n and_o obedience_n they_o pray_v not_o only_o for_o their_o king_n and_o for_o their_o child_n that_o they_o may_v live_v long_o and_o prosper_v but_o likewise_o for_o the_o state_n of_o their_o government_n the_o good_a success_n whereof_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o seek_v and_o regard_v as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o of_o the_o king_n be_v dutiful_a subject_n and_o thus_o they_o live_v in_o babylon_n lvii_o and_o other_o place_n of_o that_o dominion_n till_o the_o king_n give_v they_o leave_v to_o depart_v notwithstanding_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o endure_v many_o calamity_n and_o be_v destitute_a for_o many_o year_n of_o the_o public_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o temple_n and_o may_v not_o elsewhere_o be_v practise_v or_o attempt_v can._n xxviii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o subject_n when_o they_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o their_o obedience_n to_o their_o sovereign_n and_o set_v up_o a_o form_n of_o government_n among_o themselves_o after_o their_o own_o humour_n do_v not_o therein_o very_o wicked_o or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o border_a king_n through_o ambition_n and_o malice_n to_o invade_v their_o neighbour_n or_o that_o the_o providence_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o use_v of_o rebellion_n and_o oppression_n to_o execute_v his_o justice_n against_o any_o king_n or_o country_n do_v mitigate_v or_o qualify_v the_o offence_n of_o any_o such_o rebel_n or_o oppress_a king_n or_o that_o when_o any_o such_o new_a form_n of_o government_n begin_v by_o rebellion_n be_v after_o thorough_o settle_v the_o authority_n in_o they_o be_v not_o of_o god_n or_o that_o any_o who_o live_v within_o the_o territory_n of_o such_o new_a government_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o god_n authority_n which_o be_v there_o execute_v but_o may_v rebel_v against_o the_o same_o or_o that_o the_o jew_n either_o in_o egypt_n or_o babylon_n may_v lawful_o for_o any_o cause_n have_v take_v arm_n against_o any_o of_o those_o king_n or_o have_v offer_v any_o violence_n to_o their_o person_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxix_o although_o the_o jew_n upon_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o captivity_n lviij_o and_o restitution_n to_o their_o own_o country_n receive_v many_o favour_n from_o the_o persian_a king_n 36._o and_o have_v liberty_n give_v they_o to_o live_v in_o a_o sort_n according_a to_o their_o own_o law_n yet_o they_o never_o recover_v their_o former_a estate_n but_o live_v in_o great_a subjection_n and_o servitude_n under_o they_o whilst_o that_o monarchy_n endure_v the_o temple_n and_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v again_o build_v but_o not_o with_o the_o magnificence_n which_o they_o have_v before_o zorobabel_n first_o 20._o and_o then_o nehemiah_n be_v make_v successive_o by_o the_o say_a king_n the_o ruler_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o restore_v but_o with_o divers_a restraint_n it_o be_v not_o forget_v what_o mighty_a king_n have_v rule_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o therefore_o the_o say_a ruler_n be_v not_o permit_v to_o govern_v any_o more_o in_o that_o regal_a sort_n 9_o they_o be_v still_o subject_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o those_o king_n and_o pay_v unto_o they_o very_o large_a tribute_n and_o custom_n insomuch_o as_o when_o the_o priest_n give_v public_a thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o his_o restore_n unto_o they_o the_o state_n which_o they_o have_v they_o say_v thus_o withal_o unto_o he_o as_o bewail_v their_o condition_n lix_o behold_v we_o be_v servant_n this_o day_n in_o the_o land_n which_o thou_o give_v our_o father_n it_o yield_v much_o fruit_n unto_o the_o king_n who_o thou_o have_v set_v over_o we_o because_o of_o our_o sin_n and_o they_o have_v dominion_n over_o our_o body_n and_o over_o our_o cattle_n at_o our_o pleasure_n and_o we_o be_v in_o great_a affliction_n the_o extraordinary_a favour_n which_o be_v show_v to_o any_o be_v principal_o extend_v towards_o the_o priest_n over_o who_o the_o say_v king_n have_v not_o so_o jealous_a a_o eye_n as_o they_o have_v over_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n howbeit_o the_o same_o notwithstanding_o they_o the_o say_v priest_n be_v subject_a to_o their_o own_o immediate_a prince_n both_o in_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o former_o the_o priest_n have_v be_v to_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n before_o the_o captivity_n 63._o their_o governor_n forbid_v certain_a who_o say_v they_o be_v priest_n 13._o from_o eat_v of_o the_o most_o holy_a thing_n nehemiah_n minister_v a_o oath_n unto_o the_o priest_n he_o reform_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o prescribe_v order_n for_o the_o better_a observe_v thereof_o he_o appoint_v certain_a of_o the_o priest_n to_o oversee_v the_o tithe_n in_o the_o treasury_n he_o command_v the_o levite_n to_o cleanse_v themselves_o and_o to_o keep_v the_o gate_n and_o to_o sanctify_v the_o sabbath_n eliasib_n the_o highpriest_n have_v defile_v the_o temple_n by_o let_v tobias_n a_o stranger_n a_o chamber_n in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n where_o in_o afore_o time_n the_o offering_n the_o incense_n the_o vessel_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n use_v in_o god_n service_n have_v be_v keep_v lx_o nehemiah_n the_o governor_n be_v great_o offend_v with_o it_o and_o displace_v the_o say_a tobias_n cast_v forth_o all_o his_o stuff_n out_o
by_o the_o maccabee_n themselves_o because_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o aaron_n do_v traitorous_o notwithstanding_o and_o treacherous_o murder_v sundry_a of_o the_o jew_n and_o hold_v the_o government_n of_o that_o country_n till_o judas_n maccabaeus_n put_v he_o to_o flight_n 9_o howbeit_o accuse_v the_o maccabee_n again_o of_o wicked_a thing_n he_o urge_v afterward_o the_o say_a king_n to_o send_v a_o new_a army_n against_o they_o and_o be_v himself_o as_o it_o seem_v in_o the_o host_n when_o judas_n maccabaeus_n be_v slay_v beside_o it_o be_v also_o report_v of_o he_o how_o he_o command_v that_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o inner-court_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n shall_v be_v destroy_v 54._o and_o how_o he_o pull_v down_o the_o monument_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o how_o in_o that_o his_o so_o wicked_a and_o profane_a a_o attempt_n he_o be_v strike_v with_o the_o palsy_n lxxii_o and_o die_v with_o great_a torment_n now_o concern_v onias_n who_o if_o he_o have_v be_v of_o lawful_a age_n and_o may_v have_v have_v his_o right_n aught_o to_o have_v be_v highpriest_n before_o both_o his_o uncle_n jason_n and_o menelaus_n when_o he_o perceive_v that_o alcimus_n have_v get_v that_o place_n and_o see_v no_o probability_n how_o he_o may_v get_v it_o from_o he_o he_o flee_v into_o egypt_n and_o there_o procure_v a_o temple_n to_o be_v build_v like_a unto_o that_o in_o jerusalem_n whereof_o he_o be_v make_v the_o principal_a ruler_n so_o greedy_a be_v he_o of_o the_o high-priesthood_n that_o see_v he_o may_v not_o be_v highpriest_n in_o jerusalem_n he_o will_v needs_o be_v a_o highpriest_n in_o egypt_n against_o god_n command_n but_o perhaps_o the_o high-priesthood_n among_o the_o jew_n be_v better_o bestow_v afterward_o indeed_o now_o it_o come_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o maccabee_n but_o how_o they_o use_v it_o there_o be_v little_a mention_n lxxiii_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o be_v so_o distract_v as_o they_o be_v and_o so_o continual_o in_o a_o manner_n vex_v with_o war_n they_o have_v no_o time_n to_o execute_v that_o office_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o otherwise_o divers_a of_o they_o no_o doubt_n will_v have_v do_v but_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o some_o of_o that_o rank_n be_v great_o puff_v up_o with_o that_o authority_n and_o do_v thereby_o much_o forget_v themselves_o and_o the_o holy_a duty_n appertain_v to_o the_o high-priesthood_n else_o will_v not_o aristobulus_n have_v so_o unnatural_o famish_v his_o own_o mother_n nor_o have_v suffer_v the_o cruel_a murder_n of_o his_o innocent_a brother_n antigonus_n nor_o will_v alexander_n succeed_v aristobulus_n have_v commit_v the_o like_a murder_n upon_o his_o young_a brother_n nor_o will_v afterward_o the_o two_o son_n of_o the_o say_v alexander_n viz._n hircanus_n and_o aristobulus_n have_v grow_v through_o their_o ambitious_a desire_n to_o such_o mortal_a hatred_n for_o aristobulus_n thrust_v his_o elder_a brother_n hircanus_n from_o the_o high_a priesthood_n and_o he_o the_o say_v hircanus_n continue_v still_o his_o claim_n they_o never_o cease_v their_o hostility_n till_o pompey_n have_v subdue_v they_o both_o brought_z both_z they_o and_o the_o whole_a country_n under_o the_o subjection_n of_o the_o roman_n we_o omit_v what_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n they_o bestow_v on_o either_o side_n to_o procure_v pompey_n favour_n to_o who_o they_o have_v commit_v the_o decide_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o also_o how_o hircanus_n assist_v pompey_n in_o his_o attempt_n against_o jerusalem_n lxxiu_o partly_o in_o hope_n thereby_o to_o get_v the_o high_a priesthood_n and_o partly_o in_o malice_n against_o his_o brother_n who_o as_o long_o as_o he_o can_v defend_v that_o city_n the_o issue_n of_o all_o which_o strife_n be_v this_o pompey_z subdue_v the_o city_n slay_v twelve_o thousand_o man_n aristobulus_n be_v put_v from_o the_o high_a priesthood_n the_o civil_a government_n be_v separate_v again_o from_o the_o high-priesthood_n the_o high_a priesthood_n be_v bestow_v upon_o hircanus_n for_o his_o service_n and_o the_o civil_a government_n thenceforth_o translate_v to_o stranger_n the_o temple_n be_v spoil_v and_o jerusalem_n be_v make_v tributary_n to_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n of_o all_o which_o calamity_n fall_v in_o this_o sort_n upon_o the_o jew_n the_o dissension_n betwixt_o hircanus_n and_o aristobulus_n be_v hold_v in_o those_o day_n to_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n to_o the_o great_a blemish_n of_o their_o credit_n profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v god_n high-priest_n beside_o while_o jason_n menelaus_n alcimus_n and_o the_o maccabee_n be_v busy_v in_o their_o say_v un-priest_o contention_n and_o greekish_a profanation_n divers_a sect_n of_o religion_n arise_v and_o increase_v among_o the_o jew_n especial_o that_o of_o the_o pharisee_n a_o crafty_a and_o a_o arrogant_a kind_n of_o man_n seditious_o bend_v against_o their_o king_n and_o impugner_n without_o fear_n of_o their_o authority_n 13._o in_o which_o course_n they_o be_v the_o rather_o animate_v because_o they_o find_v through_o their_o hypocrisy_n lxxv_o that_o woman_n be_v general_o addict_v to_o they_o and_o that_o the_o people_n do_v so_o admire_v they_o as_o they_o believe_v in_o effect_n whatsoever_o they_o tell_v they_o against_o any_o 23._o although_o it_o be_v never_o so_o false_a or_o malicious_o devise_v by_o they_o and_o thus_o religion_n go_v in_o those_o day_n when_o the_o priest_n have_v get_v the_o reins_o into_o their_o own_o hand_n although_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o few_o notwithstanding_o both_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o of_o the_o people_n who_o dislike_a of_o all_o their_o say_a hypocritical_a ambitious_a profane_a and_o wicked_a practice_n cover_v sometime_o with_o a_o pretence_n of_o zeal_n and_o sometime_o with_o the_o glorious_a name_n of_o the_o high_a priesthood_n do_v true_o from_o their_o heart_n both_o fear_n and_o serve_v the_o lord_n can._n xxxii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o because_o in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n there_o be_v great_a obedience_n to_o the_o highpriest_n prescribe_v and_o require_v or_o that_o it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o the_o priest_n lip_n shall_v preserve_v knowledge_n and_o that_o the_o people_n shall_v seek_v the_o law_n of_o his_o mouth_n whereas_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o those_o and_o such_o like_a place_n only_o be_v that_o the_o high-priest_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v when_o they_o command_v that_o which_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n ought_v to_o preserve_v knowledge_n shall_v affirm_v lxxxvi_o either_o that_o it_o be_v not_o wicked_o do_v by_o their_o priest_n to_o thrust_v the_o people_n into_o many_o imminent_a danger_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o lewd_a quarrel_n and_o faction_n or_o that_o they_o do_v not_o grievous_o offend_v god_n when_o they_o forsake_v his_o true_a worship_n and_o bring_v heathenish_a and_o profane_a sacrifice_n into_o his_o temple_n or_o that_o the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v when_o they_o require_v they_o to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o the_o heathen_a or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o of_o the_o say_a high-priest_n by_o injury_n bribery_n or_o cruelty_n to_o seek_v the_o high_a priesthood_n or_o that_o the_o priest_n and_o people_n that_o join_v with_o they_o do_v not_o wicked_o who_o assist_v pompey_n to_o invade_v jerusalem_n and_o to_o bring_v their_o own_o country_n in_o bondage_n to_o the_o roman_n or_o that_o any_o such_o pharisaical_a sect_n never_o ordain_v by_o god_n be_v lawful_o then_o permit_v to_o seduce_v the_o simple_a sort_n of_o the_o people_n lead_v they_o into_o faction_n and_o dislike_n of_o their_o superior_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxxiii_o lxxvii_o the_o jew_n be_v subdue_v by_o the_o roman_n and_o bring_v under_o their_o subjection_n about_o sixty_o year_n before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v use_v by_o they_o very_o kind_o and_o with_o great_a respect_n they_o have_v liberty_n grant_v they_o to_o live_v according_a to_o their_o own_o law_n so_o as_o they_o pay_v their_o tribute_n and_o frame_v their_o behaviour_n to_o quietness_n and_o obedience_n hircanus_n the_o highpriest_n 11._o place_v by_o pompey_n live_v long_o after_o in_o great_a authority_n but_o nothing_o will_v satisfy_v they_o till_o in_o the_o end_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o as_o the_o ambition_n and_o strife_n betwixt_o hircanus_n and_o aristobulus_n bring_v pompey_n upon_o they_o so_o now_o their_o own_o wickedness_n and_o rebellious_a heart_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o great_a servitude_n affliction_n and_o misery_n the_o remnant_n of_o the_o maccabee_n aristobulus_n and_o his_o two_o son_n alexander_n and_o antigonus_n will_v never_o desist_v from_o their_o rebellious_a attempt_n until_o they_o be_v all_o cut_v off_o antipater_n the_o first_o governor_n 19_o or_o procurator_n appoint_v
earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o all_o that_o therein_o be_v 1._o the_o round_a world_n and_o all_o that_o dwell_v therein_o 5._o whereupon_o he_o be_v call_v ordinary_o 35._o in_o the_o old_a testament_n dominator_fw-la dominus_fw-la the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o god_n and_o possessor_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n so_o as_o he_o be_v the_o universal_a lord_n and_o ruler_n over_o all_o the_o world_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v his_o universal_a kingdom_n in_o the_o government_n whereof_o he_o ever_o use_v the_o ministry_n of_o civil_a magistrate_n as_o well_o in_o other_o country_n xc_o as_o among_o his_o own_o peculiar_a people_n of_o israel_n without_o any_o desert_n of_o they_o but_o as_o in_o his_o heavenly_a providente_fw-la he_o think_v it_o most_o convenient_a 5._o i_o have_v make_v say_v he_o the_o earth_n the_o man_n and_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o have_v give_v it_o to_o who_o it_o please_v i_o 32._o and_o again_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n change_v the_o time_n and_o season_n that_o he_o have_v power_n and_o bear_v rule_v over_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n that_o he_o take_v away_o king_n and_o set_v up_o king_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o god_n of_o heaven_n 8._o who_o give_v unto_o nabuchadnezzar_n so_o great_a a_o kingdom_n power_n strength_n and_o glory_n as_o than_o he_o have_v to_o rule_v with_o majesty_n and_o honour_n a_o very_a great_a empire_n in_o respect_n whereof_o although_o king_n and_o prince_n may_v have_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o title_n of_o lieutenant_n or_o vicegerent_n in_o earth_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o do_v communicate_v and_o impart_v so_o much_o of_o his_o power_n authority_n and_o dignity_n unto_o they_o as_o he_o be_v content_a to_o style_v they_o with_o his_o own_o name_n i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a howbeit_o for_o all_o their_o say_a dignity_n and_o greatness_n he_o do_v not_o leave_v they_o at_o liberty_n to_o do_v what_o they_o list_v but_o hold_v himself_o the_o helm_n of_o every_o kingdom_n xci_o and_o use_v their_o service_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o be_v they_o good_a or_o bad_a and_o their_o designment_n holy_a or_o wicked_a he_o ever_o make_v they_o the_o executioner_n of_o his_o own_o just_a judgement_n will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n according_a as_o he_o be_v mind_v either_o to_o bless_v or_o to_o punish_v any_o kingdom_n people_n or_o country_n in_o regard_n of_o which_o his_o may_v providence_n and_o wisdom_n whereby_o he_o rule_v they_o after_o that_o sort_n he_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n the_o king_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o god_n of_o god_n 1._o that_o be_v of_o king_n prince_n judge_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o it_o may_v not_o here_o be_v omit_v which_o indeed_o arise_v of_o the_o premise_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o dispose_v of_o the_o government_n under_o he_o of_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o appoint_v any_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o sole_a monarch_n of_o the_o world_n as_o from_o who_o all_o other_o kingdom_n government_n king_n and_o prince_n shall_v receive_v their_o direction_n and_o unto_o who_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a it_o be_v true_a that_o adam_n whilst_o he_o live_v be_v the_o chief_a governor_n under_o the_o son_n of_o god_n xcij_o over_o all_o his_o own_o offspring_n and_o that_o noah_n likewise_o during_o his_o life_n have_v the_o like_a authority_n but_o when_o after_o the_o flood_n the_o issue_n of_o sem_fw-mi cham_fw-mi and_o japhet_n grow_v to_o a_o great_a people_n their_o father_n noah_n do_v not_o commit_v to_o any_o one_o of_o they_o the_o government_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o of_o all_o of_o their_o posterity_n but_o divide_v the_o whole_a world_n among_o they_o three_o and_o from_o they_o no_o one_o sole_a monarch_n or_o monarchy_n but_o many_o king_n principality_n kingdom_n and_o government_n by_o god_n providence_n have_v descend_v it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o if_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o have_v commit_v to_o any_o one_o man_n a_o government_n of_o so_o large_a a_o extent_n he_o will_v have_v trust_v his_o servant_n king_n david_n with_o it_o be_v a_o man_n according_a to_o his_o own_o heart_n but_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n wherein_o david_n reign_v be_v bound_v within_o the_o strait_a limit_n assign_v to_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n and_o such_o other_o king_n as_o swerve_v after_o that_o time_n from_o david_n mild_a and_o temperate_a government_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o title_n of_o monarchy_n have_v enlarge_v their_o kingdom_n by_o injury_n and_o oppression_n of_o their_o neighbour_n where_o in_o their_o pride_n and_o greediness_n but_o the_o scourge_v and_o rod_n of_o god_n indignation_n xciij_o and_o have_v their_o fatal_a end_n according_o so_o as_o where_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n 38._o speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n call_v he_o king_n of_o king_n and_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o ruler_n over_o all_o place_n wherein_o the_o child_n of_o man_n dwell_v 2._o and_o cyrus_n the_o king_n of_o persia_n affirm_v that_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o heaven_n have_v give_v he_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v apparent_a both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o history_n that_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o have_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o world_n under_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o that_o there_o be_v very_o many_o king_n who_o have_v absolute_a government_n in_o their_o kingdom_n and_o be_v no_o way_n subject_n unto_o they_o the_o say_v place_n of_o necessity_n must_v receive_v this_o exposition_n that_o either_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v hyperbolical_o whereby_o to_o express_v the_o greatness_n of_o a_o thing_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v big_a than_o it_o be_v or_o by_o a_o synecdoche_n which_o use_v the_o whole_a sometime_o for_o a_o part_n or_o according_a to_o the_o usual_a phrase_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o all_o be_v often_o take_v for_o many_o or_o else_o both_o daniel_n and_o cyrus_n speak_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o chaldaean_n and_o persian_n who_o to_o extol_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o king_n and_o the_o better_a to_o please_v they_o do_v peradventure_o so_o enlarge_v and_o amplify_v the_o style_n placet_fw-la can._n xxxv_o xclv_n if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v not_o the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o appoint_v under_o he_o divers_a king_n prince_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o place_n assign_v unto_o they_o or_o that_o have_v so_o appoint_v they_o he_o do_v not_o himself_o direct_v uphold_v and_o rule_v they_o by_o his_o omnipotence_n according_a to_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o may_v not_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v true_o call_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o the_o god_n of_o god_n or_o that_o all_o the_o world_n and_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n and_o civil_a kind_n of_o government_n in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o god_n of_o god_n one_o kingdom_n principality_n or_o government_n thereby_o to_o impeach_v the_o mild_a and_o temperate_a government_n which_o he_o have_v establish_v among_o the_o jew_n or_o that_o he_o ever_o commit_v the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o world_n after_o adam_n and_o noah_n time_n to_o any_o one_o man_n to_o be_v the_o sole_a and_o visible_a monarch_n of_o it_o or_o that_o the_o say_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o god_n of_o god_n and_o so_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n be_v otherwise_o visible_a upon_o the_o earth_n than_o per_fw-la part_n viz._n by_o the_o particular_a kingdom_n and_o kind_n of_o civil_a government_n or_o perhaps_o by_o some_o representation_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la placet_fw-la eye_n cap._n xxxvi_o xcv_o as_o there_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n one_o universal_a kingdom_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n whereof_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o the_o sole_a though_o invisible_a monarch_n as_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n so_o it_o be_v general_o agree_v upon_o among_o all_o christian_n that_o from_o the_o creation_n of_o mankind_n during_o the_o time_n aforesaid_a there_o have_v always_o be_v one_o universal_a or_o catholic_n church_n which_o begin_v in_o adam_n and_o afterward_o as_o his_o posterity_n multiply_v both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o flood_n be_v disperse_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o whereof_o the_o son_n of_o god_n likewise_o be_v always_o the_o head_n
placet_fw-la can._n xxxvi_o cii_o if_o any_o man_n therefore_o shall_v affirm_v either_o that_o during_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n actual_o to_o come_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o save_v all_o true_a believer_n or_o that_o there_o be_v then_o no_o catholic_n church_n or_o that_o at_o any_o time_n there_o be_v any_o other_o rock_n but_o jesus_n christ_n the_o bless_a seed_n upon_o who_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v then_o build_v or_o that_o many_o of_o the_o gentile_n be_v not_o always_o for_o aught_o that_o be_v know_v to_o the_o contrary_a true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o that_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o the_o sole_a head_n or_o monarch_n all_o that_o while_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n or_o that_o the_o say_a catholic_n church_n after_o the_o member_n of_o it_o be_v disperse_v into_o all_o the_o place_n of_o the_o world_n be_v otherwise_o visible_a than_o per_fw-la part_n or_o that_o noah_n do_v appoint_v any_o man_n to_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o say_a catholic_n church_n or_o that_o the_o highpriest_n among_o the_o jew_n have_v any_o more_o authority_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o god_n than_o king_n david_n have_v over_o the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o god_n or_o that_o the_o say_a highpriest_n have_v not_o great_o sin_v if_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o or_o usurp_v any_o such_o infinite_a authority_n he_o do_v great_o err_v placet_fw-la eye_n the_o say_v xxxvi_o chapter_n with_o the_o constitution_n make_v upon_o they_o have_v pass_v with_o one_o consent_n both_o the_o convocation-house_n and_o so_o be_v approve_v canterbury_n r._n cant._n the_o say_v xxxvi_o chapter_n with_o the_o constitution_n make_v upon_o they_o have_v be_v diligent_o read_v and_o deliberate_o examine_v and_o thereupon_o have_v likewise_o pass_v with_o one_o consent_n in_o the_o convocation-house_n of_o the_o province_n of_o york_n worcester_n jo._n bristol_n praeses_fw-la convocat_n eborac_n lib_fw-la ii_o cap._n i._n in_o pursue_v our_o intend_a course_n through_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o until_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n we_o over-slipped_n and_o pass_v by_o the_o fullness_n of_o that_o time_n wherein_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o maker_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n so_o as_o now_o we_o be_v to_o return_v back_o and_o prosecute_v our_o say_a course_n as_o we_o find_v the_o true_a ground_n thereof_o be_v lay_v down_o confirm_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n at_o our_o entrance_n into_o which_o course_n we_o confess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v indeed_o great_o astonish_v consider_v the_o strange_a impediment_n and_o mighty_a stumbling-block_n which_o through_o long_a practice_n and_o incredible_a ambition_n be_v cast_v in_o our_o way_n in_o that_o we_o find_v the_o estate_n of_o that_o church_n which_o will_v rule_v over_o all_o to_o be_v degenerate_v in_o our_o day_n as_o far_o in_o effect_n from_o her_o primary_n and_o apostolical_a institution_n and_o rule_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n to_o have_v swerve_v through_o the_o like_a pride_n and_o ambition_n from_o that_o excellent_a condition_n wherein_o she_o be_v first_o establish_v and_o afterward_o preserve_v and_o beautify_v by_o moses_n and_o king_n david_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o most_o worthy_a and_o godly_a successor_n 46._o for_o except_o we_o shall_v condemn_v the_o old_a testament_n as_o many_o ancient_a heretic_n have_v do_v and_o thereupon_o overthrow_v all_o which_o hitherto_o we_o have_v build_v and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o shall_v furthermore_o either_o approve_v of_o their_o gross_a impiety_n who_o read_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o if_o they_o be_v falsify_v and_o corrupt_v and_o by_o receive_v and_o reject_v as_o much_o of_o they_o as_o they_o list_v do_v prefer_v before_o they_o as_o not_o contain_v in_o they_o all_o necessary_a truth_n for_o man_n salvation_n certain_a obscure_a and_o apocryphal_a write_n or_o shall_v ourselves_o impious_o imagine_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o now_o we_o have_v it_o be_v but_o a_o rough_a draught_n and_o a_o fit_a project_n compile_v for_o the_o time_n by_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v afterward_o better_o order_v polish_a and_o supply_v with_o certain_a humane_a tradition_n and_o doctrine_n by_o some_o of_o their_o successor_n we_o can_v see_v no_o authentical_a ground_n nor_o sufficient_a warrant_n in_o those_o write_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o true_a rule_n of_o every_o christian_a man_n conscience_n as_o not_o be_v there_o to_o be_v find_v for_o any_o apostolical_a priest_n or_o bishop_n either_o to_o pretend_v that_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v under_o his_o government_n or_o to_o tell_v the_o subject_n of_o any_o christian_a king_n opposite_a in_o some_o point_n unto_o he_o that_o they_o be_v no_o long_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o their_o say_a king_n but_o until_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a by_o force_n of_o arm_n or_o by_o some_o secret_a practice_n to_o subdue_v he_o or_o to_o challenge_v to_o himself_o a_o absolute_a and_o universal_a authority_n and_o power_n over_o all_o king_n and_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n to_o bestow_v they_o in_o some_o case_n under_o pretence_n of_o religion_n when_o he_o shall_v think_v the_o same_o to_o be_v most_o available_a for_o the_o strengthen_n and_o uphold_v of_o such_o his_o pretend_a universal_a power_n and_o dominion_n to_o the_o proof_n whereof_o before_o we_o address_v ourselves_o because_o the_o same_o do_v much_o depend_v upon_o the_o admirable_a humiliation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o and_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o he_o do_v we_o have_v think_v it_o our_o duty_n lest_o otherwise_o we_o may_v be_v mistake_v either_o through_o weakness_n simplicity_n or_o malice_n first_o brief_o to_o observe_v notwithstanding_o our_o saviour_n say_a humiliation_n the_o most_o wonderful_a dignity_n preeminency_n and_o royalty_n of_o his_o person_n it_o be_v many_o way_n apparent_a that_o the_o mean_a estate_n and_o condition_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n here_o upon_o earth_n be_v one_o especial_a motive_n both_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n why_o in_o their_o carnal_a judgement_n he_o be_v to_o the_o one_o sort_n a_o scandal_n and_o to_o the_o other_o a_o scorn_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o man_n out_o of_o his_o wit_n and_o preach_v he_o know_v not_o what_o in_o which_o respect_n partly_o not_o only_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o priest_n of_o all_o sort_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o hypocritical_a order_n but_o likewise_o the_o civil_a governor_n as_o well_o roman_n as_o jew_n do_v utter_o despise_v he_o hate_v he_o deride_z him_z beat_v he_o and_o put_v he_o to_o death_n since_o which_o time_n sundry_a sort_n of_o heretic_n have_v stumble_v at_o the_o same_o stone_n labour_v by_o all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v to_o impeach_v and_o dishonour_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o mean_a show_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n notwithstanding_o the_o many_o argument_n which_o they_o may_v have_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o their_o heart_n be_v harden_v of_o his_o divinity_n on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o adherent_n suppose_v it_o will_v too_o much_o impeach_v their_o credit_n and_o worldly_a reputation_n if_o they_o shall_v be_v too_o much_o press_v to_o deduce_v the_o principal_a strength_n of_o their_o estate_n and_o calling_n from_o the_o say_v mean_a condition_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o live_v in_o this_o world_n do_v thereupon_o attribute_v sundry_a virtue_n power_n and_o branch_n of_o authority_n unto_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o do_v not_o in_o truth_n belong_v proper_o unto_o it_o but_o be_v rather_o appertain_v to_o his_o person_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n as_o hope_v thereby_o to_o get_v some_o fair_a pretence_n and_o colour_n for_o the_o uphold_v of_o their_o usurp_a greatness_n and_o pretend_v uncontrollable_a sovereignty_n for_o the_o avoid_n therefore_o of_o these_o extremity_n and_o because_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v most_o false_o charge_v by_o sundry_a passionate_a and_o inconsiderate_a person_n to_o be_v man_n that_o believe_v no_o one_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n we_o have_v think_v it_o meet_v to_o make_v it_o know_v to_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n how_o detestable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n all_o such_o false_a doctrine_n be_v as_o do_v any_o way_n not_o only_o impeach_v the_o sacred_a person_n of_o our_o saviour_n
serve_v or_o as_o st._n luke_n have_v christ_n word_n you_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o that_o be_v you_o shall_v not_o live_v as_o king_n upon_o the_o earth_n nor_o have_v such_o worldly_a estate_n as_o that_o thereby_o you_o may_v have_v occasion_n to_o vaunt_v in_o the_o world_n what_o great_a benefactor_n you_o have_v be_v in_o advance_v your_o follower_n to_o this_o or_o that_o dukedom_n according_a as_o great_a king_n and_o monarch_n be_v accustom_v to_o deal_v with_o their_o servant_n and_o principal_a subject_n but_o let_v the_o great_a among_o you_o be_v as_o the_o least_o and_o the_o chief_a as_o he_o that_o serve_v for_o who_o be_v great_a he_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n or_o he_o that_o serve_v be_v not_o he_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n and_o i_o be_o among_o you_o as_o he_o that_o serve_v by_o which_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n it_o be_v very_o manifest_a how_o far_o he_o be_v from_o challenge_v to_o himself_o any_o worldly_a kingdom_n and_o how_o much_o his_o apostle_n be_v deceive_v in_o apprehend_v what_o great_a man_n they_o shall_v become_v by_o be_v his_o follower_n and_o disciple_n to_o this_o purpose_n much_o more_o may_v be_v here_o allege_v by_o we_o as_o also_o it_o will_v not_o be_v forget_v what_o we_o have_v before_o observe_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n tend_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n in_o as_o much_o as_o christ_n have_v make_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o five_o commandment_n which_o tie_v he_o as_o well_o to_o be_v a_o subject_a unto_o the_o emperor_n under_o who_o he_o be_v bear_v as_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o his_o parent_n do_v thereby_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v no_o temporal_a monarch_n howbeit_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v some_o so_o much_o addict_v in_o these_o day_n unto_o the_o say_v erroneous_a opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o will_v needs_o have_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n a_o temporal_a king_n affirm_v that_o upon_o his_o nativity_n all_o the_o king_n in_o the_o world_n lose_v their_o regal_a power_n and_o authority_n all_o their_o kingdom_n be_v devolve_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o they_o can_v no_o long_o possess_v they_o by_o any_o right_n interest_n or_o title_n until_o they_o have_v again_o resume_v they_o from_o he_o as_o he_o be_v man_n and_o forsake_v their_o ancient_a tenor_n whereby_o they_o have_v hold_v they_o of_o he_o as_o he_o be_v god_n insomuch_o as_o some_o of_o they_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o neither_o augustus_n caesar_n nor_o tiberius_n his_o successor_n be_v lawful_a emperor_n from_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n birth_n for_o above_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o year_n until_o our_o saviour_n have_v require_v the_o jew_n to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o caesar_n as_o if_o in_o so_o do_v tiberius_n have_v again_o receive_v thereby_o his_o former_a right_n to_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o thereupon_o he_o be_v from_o that_o time_n forward_o to_o hold_v it_o of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man._n in_o which_o erroneous_a conceit_n these_o man_n proceed_v further_a than_o ever_o the_o jew_n or_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o weakness_n do_v for_o the_o jew_n never_o imagine_v of_o their_o messiah_n that_o when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o shall_v abolish_v all_o civil_a government_n among_o the_o gentile_n and_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n to_o rule_v all_o nation_n or_o that_o as_o many_o sovereign_a king_n and_o prince_n as_o shall_v from_o that_o time_n forward_o desire_v to_o rule_v their_o subject_n by_o any_o lawful_a power_n and_o authority_n must_v receive_v and_o hold_v the_o same_o from_o the_o say_a jew_n their_o temporal_a king_n but_o do_v restrain_v their_o conceit_n within_o more_o narrow_a bound_n think_v that_o their_o messiah_n shall_v not_o have_v such_o intermeddle_v with_o the_o gentile_n but_o only_o restore_v the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n which_o have_v for_o a_o long_a time_n be_v miserable_o shake_v and_o rend_v in_o piece_n and_o live_v in_o that_o country_n among_o they_o in_o a_o much_o more_o glorious_a form_n and_o state_n than_o any_o of_o their_o king_n before_o he_o have_v do_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o these_o the_o say_v person_n have_v inconsiderate_o so_o far_o overrun_v the_o jew_n in_o their_o folly_n be_v possess_v nevertheless_o with_o some_o imagination_n no_o doubt_n that_o because_o the_o pope_n do_v either_o applaud_v or_o wink_v at_o their_o proceed_n they_o may_v in_o time_n make_v it_o probable_a to_o the_o simple_a sort_n who_o when_o force_n be_v to_o be_v use_v do_v bear_v the_o great_a sway_n that_o as_o all_o emperor_n and_o king_n forsooth_o hold_v their_o kingdom_n from_o christ_n as_o he_o then_o be_v and_o still_o be_v man_n so_o ought_v they_o now_o in_o these_o day_n to_o hold_v they_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o that_o if_o man_n may_v safe_o believe_v they_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v as_o they_o say_v after_o his_o ascension_n bestow_v all_o such_o worldly_a dominion_n upon_o st._n peter_n and_o consequent_o upon_o his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o now_o all_o worldly_a principality_n be_v they_o and_o must_v be_v hold_v of_o they_o as_o they_o be_v before_o of_o christ_n after_o his_o incarnation_n by_o as_o many_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o desire_v to_o hold_v their_o kingdom_n by_o any_o right_a title_n but_o these_o be_v man_n not_o to_o be_v fear_v for_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o in_o effect_n either_o but_o gross_a and_o unlearned_a canonist_n or_o else_o but_o new_a upstart_n and_o sottish_a nerians_n and_o of_o great_a affinity_n with_o the_o canonist_n who_o meaning_n as_o it_o seem_v to_o outstrip_v the_o jesuit_n do_v labour_n as_o much_o to_o make_v the_o pope_n a_o temporal_a monarch_n as_o the_o jesuit_n have_v do_v for_o his_o pretend_a spiritual_a sovereignty_n who_o endeavour_n be_v altogether_o as_o we_o suppose_v to_o be_v contemn_v in_o that_o both_o the_o sort_n of_o they_o as_o well_o canonist_n as_o nerians_n be_v more_o voluminous_a in_o their_o write_n then_o substantial_a fill_v they_o principal_o with_o very_o idle_a and_o ridiculous_a canon_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n own_o make_v and_o have_v no_o true_a feel_n or_o sense_n of_o divinity_n do_v handle_v the_o scripture_n when_o they_o have_v leisure_n to_o come_v unto_o they_o with_o so_o foul_a and_o unwashed_a hand_n as_o that_o their_o master_n either_o be_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o in_o that_o he_o permit_v their_o so_o absurd_a book_n to_o come_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n beside_o it_o will_v not_o a_o little_a hinder_v their_o credit_n if_o it_o make_v they_o not_o a_o scorn_n to_o all_o posterity_n even_o among_o such_o man_n as_o have_v otherwise_o make_v themselves_o vassal_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n because_o the_o say_a jesuit_n and_o some_o other_o not_o to_o have_v be_v despise_v for_o their_o learning_n whilst_o they_o have_v strive_v to_o advance_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a have_v themselves_o in_o a_o manner_n break_v the_o neck_n of_o his_o fondly-conceited_n temporal_a monarchy_n some_o of_o the_o chief_a among_o they_o affirm_v very_o peremptory_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o man_n be_v never_o a_o temporal_a king_n upon_o earth_n nor_o ever_o have_v any_o such_o temporal_a authority_n 5._o or_o government_n as_o do_v appertain_v unto_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n we_o will_v set_v down_o some_o word_n of_o one_o that_o be_v of_o especial_a authority_n among_o they_o not_o because_o we_o intend_v to_o ground_v any_o thing_n upon_o they_o but_o for_o that_o they_o be_v true_a and_o may_v perhaps_o be_v of_o more_o force_n than_o we_o be_v like_a to_o be_v with_o some_o kind_n of_o people_n the_o rectify_v of_o who_o heart_n in_o the_o truth_n we_o tender_v as_o much_o as_o we_o do_v our_o own_o christ_n say_v he_o do_v not_o take_v kingdom_n from_o they_o who_o they_o be_v for_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o destroy_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v well_o settle_v but_o to_o make_v they_o better_o therefore_o when_o a_o king_n be_v become_v a_o christian_n he_o do_v not_o lose_v his_o earthly_a kingdom_n but_o procure_v a_o new_a interest_n to_o a_o kingdom_n that_o be_v eternal_a otherwise_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v hurtful_a to_o king_n and_o grace_n shall_v destroy_v nature_n and_o again_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n whilst_o he_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n neither_o do_v nor_o will_v receive_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n and_o again_o i_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v always_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n a_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o creature_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o his_o father_n
death_n of_o christ_n to_o repair_v to_o their_o priest_n and_o sanhedrim_n if_o either_o they_o mean_v to_o be_v true_o instruct_v in_o the_o law_n or_o to_o have_v such_o manner_n of_o offence_n lawful_o punish_v by_o those_o kind_n of_o censure_n that_o christ_n in_o the_o say_a place_n speak_v of_o but_o what_o shall_v we_o insist_v so_o much_o upon_o this_o point_n to_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o jew_n that_o either_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o do_v reject_v he_o be_v bind_v before_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n establish_v by_o god_n himself_o in_o that_o visible_a church_n consider_v how_o careful_a our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v upon_o every_o occasion_n offer_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o their_o authority_n whilst_o it_o be_v to_o endure_v and_o with_o what_o humility_n he_o do_v submit_v himself_o unto_o it_o for_o be_v send_v for_o by_o they_o he_o be_v content_a at_o that_o time_n to_o go_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o be_v examine_v by_o they_o when_o he_o have_v find_v they_o many_o way_n before_o to_o be_v his_o mortal_a enemy_n and_o know_v how_o at_o that_o present_a they_o be_v plot_v to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n by_o corrupt_v of_o judas_n to_o betray_v he_o into_o their_o hand_n and_o by_o suborn_v of_o false_a witness_n to_o accuse_v he_o as_o also_o how_o after_o they_o have_v examine_v he_o they_o will_v use_v he_o most_o despiteful_o and_o scornful_o spit_v in_o his_o face_n and_o buffet_v he_o beat_v he_o with_o rod_n carry_v he_o bind_v as_o a_o malefactor_n and_o deliver_v he_o to_o pilate_n the_o civil_a magistrate_n likewise_o how_o they_o themselves_o will_v be_v his_o accuser_n how_o they_o will_v practice_v with_o the_o people_n to_o prefer_v barabbas_n liberty_n be_v a_o murderer_n before_o he_o and_o to_o cry_v out_o with_o they_o to_o pilate_n let_v he_o be_v crucify_v let_v he_o be_v crucify_v crucify_v he_o crucify_v he_o their_o outrage_n and_o fury_n be_v so_o bend_v against_o he_o as_o that_o they_o themselves_o will_v have_v put_v he_o to_o death_n if_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o roman_n whereunto_o they_o be_v then_o subject_a they_o may_v have_v be_v permit_v so_o to_o have_v do_v can._n iii_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o obedient_a to_o the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a as_o he_o be_v to_o the_o temporal_a or_o that_o all_o christian_n by_o his_o example_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o be_v as_o well_o obedient_a to_o their_o church-governor_n as_o they_o be_v to_o their_o civil_a magistrate_n or_o that_o christian_a king_n have_v not_o now_o as_o full_a authority_n to_o appoint_v some_o festival_n day_n of_o public_a thanksgiving_n to_o god_n in_o remembrance_n of_o some_o great_a and_o extraordinary_a mercy_n of_o he_o show_v unto_o they_o upon_o those_o day_n as_o judas_n maccabaeus_n have_v to_o ordain_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o be_v yearly_o celebrate_v or_o that_o where_o any_o such_o festival_n day_n be_v appoint_v the_o subject_n of_o every_o such_o king_n ought_v not_o by_o christ_n example_n in_o celebrate_v the_o say_a feast_n to_o observe_v and_o keep_v they_o or_o that_o all_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o teach_v by_o christ_n example_n in_o his_o observe_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v then_o in_o force_n that_o they_o likewise_o be_v bind_v to_o observe_v all_o such_o constitution_n and_o ceremony_n as_o for_o order_n and_o decency_n be_v with_o all_o due_a caution_n establish_v in_o any_o particular_a church_n by_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o it_o until_o it_o shall_v please_v they_o the_o say_v governor_n to_o abrogate_v they_o or_o that_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v by_o christ_n example_n to_o refrain_v all_o bitterness_n of_o calumniation_n and_o detraction_n and_o to_o deal_v temperate_o and_o mild_o with_o their_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o authority_n that_o it_o be_v not_o bring_v into_o contempt_n though_o they_o find_v some_o imperfection_n either_o in_o their_o person_n or_o in_o their_o proceed_n as_o he_o our_o say_v bless_a saviour_n in_o the_o same_o respect_n deal_v with_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n though_o they_o have_v many_o way_n transgress_v and_o be_v his_o mortal_a enemy_n or_o that_o christ_n by_o whip_a buyer_n and_o seller_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n do_v either_o impeach_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o priest_n or_o practice_v therein_o any_o pontifical_a or_o temporal_a power_n as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o temporal_a king_n or_o do_v the_o same_o by_o any_o other_o authority_n than_o as_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n or_o that_o christian_n be_v not_o now_o as_o strong_o bind_v in_o doubt_n of_o religion_n to_o repair_v unto_o the_o chief_a minister_n and_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n although_o they_o be_v not_o always_o tie_v to_o do_v as_o they_o do_v as_o be_v the_o jew_n in_o such_o like_a case_n bind_v to_o repair_v to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o moses_n seat_n or_o that_o every_o true_a christian_a when_o for_o the_o say_a cause_n he_o repair_v to_o the_o chief_a minister_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v resolve_v by_o they_o be_v any_o further_a now_o bind_v to_o depend_v upon_o such_o their_o resolution_n than_o they_o be_v able_a to_o show_v they_o unto_o he_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o than_o the_o jew_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n though_o they_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n when_o they_o teach_v they_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o that_o which_o moses_n have_v command_v or_o that_o christ_n example_n in_o condemn_v the_o false_a interpretation_n and_o gloss_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n and_o in_o restore_v to_o the_o law_n the_o true_a sense_n and_o original_a meaning_n of_o it_o have_v not_o ever_o since_o warrant_v learned_a and_o godly_a man_n when_o they_o find_v the_o scripture_n pervert_v by_o those_o that_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o purpose_n to_o make_v their_o own_o gain_n thereof_o and_o to_o maintain_v their_o great_a usurpation_n to_o free_v the_o same_o by_o search_v the_o say_a scripture_n from_o all_o such_o false_a interpretation_n and_o gloss_n and_o to_o make_v plain_a as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o do_v lie_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o he_o purge_v divers_a part_n of_o the_o law_n from_o the_o gross_a and_o erroneous_a exposition_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n do_v give_v any_o other_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o they_o or_o infer_v upon_o it_o any_o new_a rule_n of_o great_a perfection_n either_o as_o he_o be_v man_n or_o as_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n than_o they_o have_v and_o contain_v original_o when_o he_o first_o give_v they_o to_o the_o israelite_n as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o erroneous_a and_o fond_a conceit_n like_v unto_o that_o of_o the_o sectary_n among_o the_o jew_n especial_o of_o the_o pharisee_n for_o any_o sort_n of_o person_n no_o way_n able_a to_o perform_v their_o duty_n to_o god_n in_o such_o manner_n and_o sort_n as_o they_o ought_v once_o so_o much_o as_o to_o imagine_v that_o by_o the_o observation_n of_o their_o own_o rule_n they_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v to_o great_a perfection_n than_o by_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n rule_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o as_o vain_a and_o fond_a a_o imagination_n as_o the_o former_a for_o any_o christian_a man_n to_o think_v that_o the_o enjoy_n of_o such_o possession_n and_o riches_n as_o god_n have_v bless_v he_o with_o be_v repugnant_a to_o that_o perfection_n which_o god_n have_v require_v at_o his_o hand_n or_o that_o the_o same_o be_v otherwise_o incompatible_a with_o the_o say_a perfection_n than_o in_o such_o case_n only_o when_o either_o they_o must_v leave_v their_o worldly_a estate_n or_o christ_n their_o saviour_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n by_o lay_v of_o some_o ground_n for_o the_o future_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n after_o his_o passion_n do_v thereby_o erect_v any_o new_a church_n apart_o from_o that_o church_n which_o be_v to_o continue_v until_o his_o death_n or_o that_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o hold_v society_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o outward_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n do_v not_o condemn_v all_o such_o sectary_n as_o do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n whereof_o they_o be_v once_o member_n the_o same_o be_v true_a church_n by_o lawful_a authority_n establish_v under_o pretence_n of_o they_o
know_v not_o what_o new_a christianity_n or_o that_o there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v now_o among_o christian_n ecclesiastical_a court_n for_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o well_o as_o there_o be_v such_o court_n among_o the_o jew_n for_o such_o kind_n of_o cause_n or_o that_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o now_o bind_v to_o repair_v as_o well_o to_o ecclesiastical_a court_n and_o governor_n for_o reformation_n of_o such_o offence_n as_o be_v of_o ecclesiastical_a counusance_n as_o the_o jew_n be_v bind_v to_o repair_v to_o their_o sanhedrim_n to_o have_v those_o evil_n redress_v that_o be_v to_o be_v reform_v by_o those_o court_n or_o that_o as_o many_o as_o do_v profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a imitator_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o such_o obedience_n unto_o their_o prince_n and_o ruler_n how_o evil-disposed_n soever_o they_o be_v yea_o though_o they_o seek_v their_o life_n as_o christ_n show_v and_o perform_v both_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a state_n of_o the_o jew_n at_o what_o time_n he_o know_v they_o be_v plot_v his_o death_n he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n v._n the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n do_v not_o alter_v the_o form_n of_o temporal_a government_n establish_v by_o himself_o long_o before_o his_o incarnation_n and_o that_o therefore_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n though_o they_o be_v then_o infidel_n be_v nevertheless_o to_o be_v obey_v by_o the_o subject_n as_o former_o from_o the_o beginning_n they_o have_v be_v it_o have_v be_v before_o observe_v by_o we_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o live_v in_o the_o world_n be_v no_o temporal_a king_n nor_o have_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n court_n possession_n regal_a state_n dukes_z earls_z lord_n or_o any_o other_o subject_n as_o other_o temporal_a king_n have_v to_o obey_v and_o serve_v he_o but_o perhaps_o after_o his_o resurrection_n it_o be_v for_o otherwise_o with_o he_o indeed_o so_o it_o be_v for_o whereas_o the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n himself_o equal_a to_o the_o father_n by_o be_v make_v man_n do_v cease_v to_o put_v in_o practice_n the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o his_o deity_n in_o his_o humane_a nature_n otherwise_o than_o by_o do_v such_o miracle_n as_o he_o think_v necessary_a for_o the_o conversion_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o now_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n the_o state_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v become_v as_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v much_o more_o glorious_a because_o his_o divine_a nature_n do_v communicate_v unto_o his_o humane_a nature_n so_o many_o divine_a dignity_n and_o operation_n of_o his_o deity_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n betwixt_o they_o as_o the_o same_o be_v capable_a of_o without_o turn_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n into_o his_o humane_a nature_n it_o be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o say_v hypostatical_a and_o real_a union_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v never_o any_o confusion_n betwixt_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n both_o of_o they_o always_o retain_v their_o distinct_a and_o essential_a propriety_n which_o ground_n observe_v we_o may_v true_o say_v that_o the_o attribute_n be_v admirable_a which_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o say_a union_n be_v and_o may_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n especial_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n for_o some_o short_a proof_n hereof_o these_o follow_a place_n may_v suffice_v before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n command_v his_o apostle_n to_o go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o tell_v they_o lest_o they_o shall_v have_v doubt_v whether_o he_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o make_v they_o so_o large_a a_o commission_n that_o all_o power_n be_v give_v he_o in_o heaven_n 18._o and_o in_o earth_n he_o also_o be_v before_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n testify_v of_o he_o make_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n 2._o and_o so_o have_v a_o true_a interest_n in_o they_o and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n 9_o have_v the_o full_a possession_n of_o they_o we_o see_v jesus_n say_v the_o apostle_n crown_v with_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o again_o 22._o when_o god_n raise_v up_o jesus_n from_o the_o dead_a he_o set_v he_o at_o his_o right_a hand_n in_o heavenly_a place_n far_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o may_v and_o domination_n and_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v not_o in_o this_o world_n only_o but_o in_o that_o also_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n subject_a under_o his_o foot_n 15._o and_o again_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v our_o lord_n and_o his_o christ_n 14._o and_o again_o the_o lamb_n be_v lord_n of_o lord_n 16._o and_o king_n of_o king_n and_o to_o conclude_v he_o have_v upon_o his_o garment_n and_o upon_o his_o thigh_n a_o name_n write_v the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n howbeit_o all_o that_o we_o have_v hitherto_o say_v notwithstanding_o though_o all_o the_o world_n do_v actual_o appertain_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n now_o in_o glory_n as_o he_o be_v man_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o say_a unition_n or_o hypostatical_a union_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o alter_v after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n the_o manner_n of_o temporal_a government_n which_o he_o have_v ordain_v throughout_o the_o world_n before_o his_o incarnation_n as_o he_o be_v god_n his_o humane_a nature_n be_v invest_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divinity_n in_o manner_n before_o express_v with_o all_o his_o say_a glory_n and_o authority_n but_o do_v still_o continue_v the_o sole_a monarch_n over_o all_o distribute_v that_o his_o universal_a kingdom_n as_o former_o he_o have_v do_v into_o divers_a principality_n and_o kingdom_n and_o appoint_v temporal_a king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n as_o his_o substitute_n and_o vicegerent_n to_o rule_v they_o all_o by_o the_o rule_n and_o law_n of_o nature_n if_o they_o be_v ethnic_n or_o if_o christian_n than_o not_o only_o by_o those_o rule_n but_o also_o as_o well_o by_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o judicial_a law_n which_o he_o give_v to_o the_o jew_n as_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n more_o thorough_o open_v and_o deliver_v with_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o by_o himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n than_o in_o former_a time_n it_o have_v be_v of_o christian_a king_n we_o shall_v have_v fit_a place_n to_o speak_v hereafter_o now_o we_o will_v prosecute_v this_o point_n concern_v the_o regal_a authority_n of_o prince_n that_o be_v infidel_n and_o consider_v more_o particular_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o and_o so_o consequent_o do_v not_o still_o as_o lawful_o enjoy_v their_o kingdom_n and_o legal_a sovereignty_n under_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n as_o they_o do_v before_o either_o of_o they_o and_o likewise_o as_o they_o do_v before_o his_o incarnation_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v deliver_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n and_o the_o especial_a reason_n that_o move_v we_o so_o to_o do_v be_v the_o audacious_a temerity_n of_o the_o beforenamed_n ignorant_a canonist_n and_o of_o their_o adherent_n the_o new_a sectary_n of_o the_o oratory_n congregation_n who_o with_o the_o like_a ignorance_n and_o folly_n that_o they_o tell_v we_o how_o all_o king_n lose_v their_o interest_n and_o authority_n over_o their_o kingdom_n by_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v furthermore_o endeavour_v very_o wicked_o and_o sottish_o to_o pervert_v such_o especial_a place_n in_o the_o apostle_n write_n as_o be_v most_o aparent_o repugnant_a to_o their_o say_a fancy_n or_o rather_o frenzy_n to_o make_v their_o deal_n with_o one_o place_n apparent_a 13._o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o purpose_n whereas_o st._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n will_v they_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n or_o teach_v they_o as_o a_o late_a absurd_a canonist_n abridge_v the_o place_n obediendum_fw-la esse_fw-la principibus_fw-la 38._o that_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v he_o speak_v not_o say_v he_o de_fw-fr ethnicis_fw-la as_o that_o place_n be_v corrupt_o allege_v sed_fw-la quatenus_fw-la de_fw-la illis_fw-la intellexit_fw-la that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o he_o mean_v it_o and_o what_o the_o apostle_n mean_v he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o sort_n say_v 1._o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o christ_n have_v approve_v when_o he_o bid_v the_o jew_n pay_v tribute_n to_o caesar_n 2._o the_o text_n do_v expound_v itself_o for_o he_o write_v to_o christian_n who_o he_o counsel_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o prince_n lest_o they_o shall_v sin_v for_o prince_n be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v for_o good_a work_n
but_o for_o evil_a therefore_o he_o do_v not_o simple_o command_v obedience_n to_o ethnic_a prince_n etc._n etc._n 3._o the_o like_a manner_n of_o writing_n st._n paul_n use_v in_o exhort_v servant_n to_o honour_v their_o lord_n etiam_fw-la infideles_fw-la though_o they_o be_v infidel_n for_o the_o reason_n by_o he_o there_o mention_v 4._o by_o those_o monition_n mean_v the_o say_a commandment_n of_o the_o apostle_n concern_v obedience_n of_o subject_n to_o their_o prince_n and_o of_o servant_n to_o their_o master_n just_a dominion_n be_v not_o found_v in_o the_o person_n of_o ethnic_n na_o paulus_n qui_fw-la hec_fw-la dicit_fw-la non_fw-la erat_fw-la summus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la for_o paul_n who_o say_v so_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n 5._o furthermore_o in_o that_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o church_n can_v not_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la punish_v infidel_n and_o transfer_v their_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n thus_o far_o this_o audacious_a and_o unlearned_a canonist_n the_o very_a citation_n of_o who_o word_n we_o hold_v sufficient_a to_o refute_v they_o although_o he_o allege_v for_o himself_o to_o support_v they_o very_o grave_a author_n the_o distinction_n forsooth_o the_o gloss_n hostiensis_n &_o praepositus_fw-la add_v that_o some_o other_o canonist_n do_v concur_v with_o he_o only_o we_o will_v oppose_v against_o he_o and_o all_o his_o fellow_n to_o show_v their_o folly_n by_o a_o proof_n of_o this_o nature_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o pope_n chief_a champion_n the_o only_a jesuit_n without_o comparison_n now_o a_o principal_a cardinal_n who_o maintain_v in_o express_a term_n that_o infidel_n prince_n be_v true_a and_o supreme_a prince_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o write_v thus_o against_o the_o say_a assertion_n of_o the_o canonist_n direct_o say_v god_n do_v approve_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o gentile_n in_o both_o the_o testament_n 2._o thou_o be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n have_v give_v thou_o thy_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n etc._n etc._n restore_v those_o thing_n unto_o caesar_n that_o be_v caesar_n 22._o note_v that_o he_o say_v not_o give_v but_o restore_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n that_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o in_o right_n be_v owe_v unto_o he_o 13._o and_o give_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o tribute_n to_o who_o you_o owe_v tribute_n and_o custom_n to_o who_o you_o owe_v custom_n et_fw-la jubet_fw-la ibidem_fw-la etiam_fw-la propter_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la obedire_fw-la principibus_fw-la ethnicis_fw-la at_o certè_fw-la non_fw-la tenemur_fw-la in_o conscientiâ_fw-la obedire_fw-la illi_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la verus_fw-la princeps_fw-la that_o be_v and_o we_o be_v command_v in_o the_o same_o place_n even_o for_o conscience_n to_o obey_v prince_n that_o be_v ethnic_n but_o assure_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o obey_v he_o who_o be_v no_o true_a lawful_a or_o right_a prince_n hitherto_o the_o cardinal_n we_o will_v not_o have_v cite_v this_o man_n testimony_n thus_o at_o large_a be_v not_o all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v therein_o thorough_o support_v by_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n as_o we_o suppose_v of_o his_o society_n and_o sufficient_a to_o refel_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o canonist_n and_o their_o fellow_n in_o that_o folly_n for_o if_o we_o shall_v insist_v herein_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n all_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v full_o concur_v with_o we_o that_o through_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o scripture_n obedience_n be_v and_o be_v as_o well_o prescribe_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o ethnic_a prince_n as_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n and_o so_o likewise_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o well_o to_o infidel_n prince_n as_o christian_a the_o precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o behalf_n be_v general_a and_o so_o to_o be_v apply_v as_o well_o to_o the_o one_o sort_n as_o to_o the_o other_o in_o that_o they_o hold_v their_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n equal_o as_o be_v aforesaid_a and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o be_v equal_o obey_v by_o their_o subject_n with_o that_o general_a caution_n which_o be_v ever_o understand_v viz._n in_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o command_v they_o and_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v in_o this_o sort_n only_o remember_v by_o we_o we_o will_v not_o much_o insist_v upon_o they_o but_o give_v that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a especial_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o apparent_a unto_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n who_o write_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n those_o thing_n which_o christ_n himself_o before_o have_v teach_v they_o do_v give_v unto_o all_o christian_n and_o subject_n to_o what_o manner_n of_o king_n soever_o these_o precept_n follow_v let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n 13._o for_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n for_o the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n whosoever_o therefore_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v shall_v receive_v to_o themselves_o judgement_n for_o prince_n be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v for_o good_a work_n but_o for_o evil_a will_v thou_o then_o be_v without_o fear_n do_v well_o so_o shall_v thou_o have_v praise_n of_o the_o same_o for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o thy_o wealth_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v evil_a fear_n for_o he_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n for_o nought_o for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n of_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a wherefore_o you_o must_v be_v subject_a not_o because_o of_o wrath_n only_o but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n for_o this_o cause_n you_o pay_v also_o tribute_n for_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n apply_v themselves_o for_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o which_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o say_v that_o prince_n have_v their_o power_n from_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v god_n minister_n there_o be_v no_o repugnancy_n to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v abovesaid_a concern_v the_o great_a honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n to_o prove_v that_o king_n do_v hold_v their_o kingdom_n under_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n and_o heir_n of_o all_o the_o world_n for_o we_o be_v very_o careful_a to_o have_v it_o still_o remember_v that_o all_o the_o say_a power_n and_o dignity_n which_o he_o have_v as_o he_o be_v man_n do_v proceed_v from_o his_o divinity_n and_o likewise_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o real_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o our_o saviour_n christ_n that_o which_o do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o one_o nature_n may_v very_o true_o be_v affirm_v of_o the_o other_o so_o as_o it_o may_v in_o that_o respect_n be_v very_o well_o say_v and_o true_o that_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n receive_v their_o authority_n from_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n and_o likewise_o that_o they_o receive_v their_o authority_n from_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v man_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n without_o any_o limitation_n but_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o say_v word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v very_o thorough_o refute_v the_o vanity_n mention_v of_o the_o canonist_n and_o their_o new_a companion_n in_o that_o by_o the_o say_a word_n it_o appear_v very_o manifest_o that_o king_n do_v not_o otherwise_o hold_v their_o kingdom_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o do_v before_o of_o his_o divine_a nature_n they_o have_v their_o authority_n say_v the_o apostle_n from_o god_n and_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o write_v either_o by_o st._n paul_n or_o by_o any_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n which_o swerve_v in_o any_o point_n from_o this_o doctrine_n where_o they_o write_v of_o the_o obedience_n due_a unto_o all_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n who_o testimony_n in_o that_o behalf_n we_o be_v as_o we_o promise_v a_o little_a further_o to_o pursue_v i_o exhort_v etc._n say_v st._n paul_n that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o for_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o quiet_a and_o a_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n and_o again_o 1._o put_v they_o that_o be_v both_o old_a and_o young_a and_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n that_o be_v purge_v to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n unto_o christ_n in_o remembrance_n that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o that_o they_o be_v obedient_a and_o ready_a to_o every_o good_a work_n also_o st._n peter_n say_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n etc._n submit_v
dispose_v they_o all_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a pleasure_n yet_o the_o parasitical_a and_o sottish_a crew_n of_o romish_a canonist_n with_o the_o new_a sectary_n their_o companion_n will_v assure_o moil_n and_o repine_v thereat_o 6._o tell_v we_o by_o the_o pen_n of_o one_o of_o their_o fellow_n the_o very_a idiot_n we_o think_v among_o they_o that_o all_o power_n dominion_n and_o worldly_a principality_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n unto_o st._n peter_n that_o two_o time_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o christ_n the_o one_o before_o his_o passion_n when_o propter_fw-la humilitatem_fw-la he_o refuse_v to_o judge_v 5._o that_o be_v to_o show_v himself_o a_o temporal_a magistrate_n the_o other_o after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o then_o he_o say_v all_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n that_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n give_v his_o power_n to_o st._n peter_n and_o make_v he_o his_o vicar_n and_o that_o ex_fw-la potestate_fw-la domini_fw-la the_o power_n of_o his_o vicar_n be_v to_o be_v measure_v and_o to_o advance_v that_o power_n as_o high_o as_o he_o can_v suppose_v that_o what_o he_o can_v say_v thereof_o do_v belong_v to_o st._n peter_n he_o quote_v a_o number_n of_o place_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 22._o concern_v the_o dignity_n honour_n royalty_n and_o majesty_n attribute_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o unition_n so_o oft_o before_o by_o we_o mention_v and_o do_v conclude_v that_o cessantibus_fw-la rationibus_fw-la humilitatis_fw-la necessitatis_fw-la atque_fw-la paupertatis_fw-la that_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o former_a humility_n necessity_n and_o poverty_n cease_v christ_n do_v show_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o ut_fw-la ascensurus_fw-la ad_fw-la patrem_fw-la eandem_fw-la potestatem_fw-la petro_n relinqueret_fw-la and_o moreover_o he_o be_v peremptory_a that_o peter_n do_v exercise_v this_o temporal_a power_n in_o suâ_fw-la propriâ_fw-la naturâ_fw-la temporaliter_fw-la in_o the_o proper_a nature_n of_o it_o temporal_o for_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o act_n 6._o c._n 5._o that_o he_o condemn_v ananias_n and_o sapphira_n pro_fw-la crimine_fw-la facti_fw-la ad_fw-la panam_fw-la civiliter_fw-la for_o the_o crime_n of_o a_o fact_n to_o a_o punishment_n civil_o now_o if_o peter_n be_v so_o great_a a_o temporal_a monarch_n whilst_o he_o live_v what_o must_v we_o think_v of_o his_o vicar_n the_o pope_n and_o how_o royal_a be_v the_o estate_n of_o all_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n that_o have_v any_o dependency_n upon_o he_o 3._o for_o as_o the_o especial_a jesuit_n and_o cardinal_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o canonist_n in_o this_o point_n do_v infer_v si_fw-mi papa_n est_fw-la dominus_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la christiani_n supremus_fw-la ergo_fw-la singuli_fw-la episcopi_fw-la sunt_fw-la principes_fw-la temporales_fw-la in_o oppidis_fw-la svo_fw-la episcopatui_fw-la subjectis_fw-la if_o the_o pope_n be_v lord_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o particular_a bishop_n be_v temporal_a prince_n in_o the_o city_n and_o town_n subject_a to_o their_o bishopric_n to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o all_o which_o the_o say_a canonist_n his_o so_o absurd_a and_o gross_a assertion_n before_o we_o proceed_v any_o further_o we_o hold_v it_o not_o unfit_a for_o the_o reason_n elsewhere_o specify_v by_o we_o when_o we_o show_v that_o christ_n be_v no_o temporal_a lord_n nor_o have_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o other_o king_n first_o to_o hear_v the_o cardinal_n how_o he_o shake_v the_o very_a groundwork_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o these_o vanity_n for_o whereas_o his_o opposite_n will_v make_v st._n peter_n and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n to_o derive_v such_o their_o infinite_a power_n and_o temporal_a authority_n from_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n as_o he_o be_v then_o a_o man_n immortal_a and_o glorious_a have_v cast_v off_o his_o former_a infirmity_n and_o mortality_n the_o cardinal_n be_v resolute_a to_o the_o contrary_a 4._o and_o do_v reason_n in_o this_o sort_n christus_fw-la ut_fw-la homo_fw-la dum_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la vixit_fw-la non_fw-la accepit_fw-la nec_fw-la voluit_fw-la ullum_fw-la temporale_fw-la dominium_fw-la summus_n autem_fw-la pontifex_fw-la christi_fw-la vicarius_fw-la est_fw-la &_o christum_fw-la nobis_fw-la repraesentat_fw-la qualis_fw-la erat_fw-la dum_fw-la hic_fw-la inter_fw-la homines_fw-la viveret_fw-la igitur_fw-la summus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la ut_fw-la christi_fw-la vicarius_fw-la atque_fw-la adeo_fw-la ut_fw-la summus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la est_fw-la nullum_fw-la habet_fw-la temporale_fw-la dominium_fw-la christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n and_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n neither_o do_v nor_o will_v receive_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n but_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n and_o do_v represent_v christ_n unto_o we_o in_o that_o estate_n and_o condition_n that_o he_o live_v in_o here_o among_o man_n therefore_o the_o pope_n as_o christ_n vicar_n and_o so_o as_o he_o be_v the_o high_a bishop_n have_v no_o temporal_a dominion_n and_o again_o dicimus_fw-la papam_fw-la habere_fw-la illud_fw-la officium_fw-la quod_fw-la habuit_fw-la christus_fw-la dum_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la inter_fw-la homines_fw-la humano_fw-la more_fw-it viveret_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la pontifici_fw-la possumus_fw-la tribuere_fw-la officia_fw-la quae_fw-la habuit_fw-la christus_fw-la ut_fw-la deus_fw-la vel_fw-la ut_fw-la homo_fw-la immortalis_fw-la &_o gloriosus_fw-la sed_fw-la solum_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la habuit_fw-la ut_fw-la homo_fw-la mortalis_fw-la we_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v that_o office_n that_o christ_n have_v when_o he_o live_v in_o the_o earth_n among_o man_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n for_o we_o can_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o those_o office_n which_o christ_n have_v as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o as_o he_o be_v man_n immortal_a and_o glorious_a but_o only_o those_o which_o he_o have_v as_o a_o mortal_a man._n neither_o do_v he_o stay_v here_o but_o go_v on_o forward_o ibid._n say_v add_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o all_o that_o power_n which_o christ_n have_v as_o a_o mortal_a man._n for_o he_o because_o he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n have_v a_o certain_a power_n which_o be_v call_v a_o power_n of_o excellency_n by_o the_o which_o he_o govern_v both_o faithful_a man_n and_o insidel_n but_o the_o pope_n have_v only_o commit_v unto_o he_o his_o sheep_n that_o be_v such_o person_n as_o be_v faithful_a again_o christ_n have_v power_n to_o institute_v sacrament_n and_o to_o work_v miracle_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n which_o thing_n the_o pope_n can_v do_v also_o christ_n may_v absolve_v man_n from_o their_o sin_n without_o the_o sacrament_n which_o the_o pope_n can_v nay_o the_o cardinal_n be_v so_o far_o from_o believe_v that_o all_o power_n and_o worldly_a principality_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n unto_o st._n peter_n and_o so_o unto_o his_o successor_n as_o he_o confess_v in_o effect_n that_o neither_o st._n peter_n as_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n can_v challenge_v so_o much_o as_o a_o rural_a farm_n or_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o temporal_a possession_n which_o have_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o temporal_a prince_n and_o lest_o such_o gift_n may_v be_v hold_v by_o any_o to_o be_v unlawful_a he_o to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a allege_v that_o they_o be_v godly_a prince_n who_o so_o endow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n these_o be_v his_o word_n quartóque_fw-la qui_fw-la donaverunt_fw-la episcopo_fw-la romano_n aliisque_fw-la episcopis_fw-la principatus_fw-la temporales_fw-la pii_fw-la homines_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la &_o eâ_fw-la de_fw-la causâ_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la à_fw-la totâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la commendati_fw-la sunt_fw-la ut_fw-la patet_fw-la de_fw-la constantino_n carolo_n magno_fw-la &_o ludovico_n ejus_fw-la silio_fw-la qui_fw-la inde_fw-la pius_fw-la appellatus_fw-la est_fw-la they_o who_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o bishop_n temporal_a principality_n be_v godly_a man_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n especial_o be_v commend_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o appear_v ofconstantine_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o lewis_n his_o son_n who_o in_o that_o respect_n be_v call_v lewis_n the_o godly_a vero_fw-la again_o that_o the_o pope_n hold_v in_o right_a that_o principality_n which_o he_o have_v may_v easy_o be_v perceive_v quia_fw-la dono_fw-la principum_fw-la habuit_fw-la because_o he_o have_v it_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o prince_n of_o which_o gift_n he_o say_v the_o authentical_a instrument_n remain_v still_o in_o rome_n add_v nevertheless_o that_o if_o they_o have_v be_v lose_v abunde_fw-la sufficeret_fw-la praescriptio_fw-la octingentorum_fw-la annorum_fw-la le_fw-fr that_o a_o prescription_n of_o 800._o year_n be_v abundant_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o pope_n right_n objicit_fw-la and_o unto_o these_o word_n of_o bernard_n forma_fw-la apostolica_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la interdicitur_fw-la dominatio_fw-la indicitur_fw-la ministratio_fw-la he_o answer_v that_o bernard_n do_v speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n secundum_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la habet_fw-la ex_fw-la christi_fw-la institutione_n also_o
that_o in_o all_o likelihood_n he_o have_v receive_v any_o great_a commendation_n for_o his_o plain_a deal_n in_o answer_n to_o another_o objection_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n who_o in_o a_o epistle_n of_o he_o to_o michael_n the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n do_v write_v thus_o christus_fw-la b._n petro_n aquavitae_fw-la aeternae_fw-la clavigero_fw-la terreni_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o coelestibus_fw-la imperii_fw-la jura_n commisti_fw-la christ_n do_v commit_v to_o st._n peter_n the_o key_n bearer_n of_o everlasting_a lise_n the_o right_a and_o interest_n both_o of_o the_o earthly_a and_o of_o the_o heavenly_a empire_n to_o which_o say_v of_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o cardinal_n make_v two_o answer_n testimonium_fw-la ad_fw-la testimonium_fw-la nicolai_n dico_fw-la imprimis_fw-la illud_fw-la citari_fw-la à_fw-la gratiano_n d._n 22._o can._n omnes_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la inveniri_fw-la inter_fw-la epistolas_fw-la nicolai_n papae_fw-la to_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o say_v be_v cite_v by_o gratian_n but_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v among_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o testimony_n be_v forge_v and_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v urge_v that_o testimony_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n in_o the_o sense_n object_v they_o make_v he_o direct_o repugnant_a to_o himself_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o say_a epistle_n and_o concern_v the_o other_o argument_n by_o our_o say_a canonist_n allege_v of_o the_o death_n of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n the_o ancient_a father_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v certain_o have_v scorn_v it_o if_o ever_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o it_o peter_n know_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o satan_n have_v possess_v both_o their_o heart_n and_o how_o they_o lie_v not_o to_o man_n but_o to_o god_n do_v only_o pronounce_v that_o sentence_n of_o death_n upon_o they_o which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v suggest_v unto_o he_o wherein_o although_o there_o may_v appear_v what_o force_n the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v when_o it_o be_v brandish_v by_o st._n peter_n through_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v assure_o no_o use_n of_o any_o material_a and_o civil_a sword_n for_o if_o there_o have_v another_o manner_n of_o form_n of_o outward_a justice_n will_v first_o have_v be_v hold_v before_o they_o have_v be_v execute_v and_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n we_o do_v free_o profess_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o christ_n his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n be_v thorough_o weigh_v we_o can_v find_v to_o what_o purpose_n either_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n shall_v have_v be_v make_v temporal_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n in_o the_o world_n because_o all_o their_o temporal_a force_n and_o sword_n join_v together_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o have_v vanquish_v one_o wicked_a spirit_n of_o the_o air_n or_o have_v open_v the_o door_n of_o any_o one_o man_n heart_n for_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o have_v enter_v and_o have_v make_v their_o habitation_n in_o it_o can._n viii_o if_o therefore_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v otherwise_o commit_v the_o world_n to_o be_v govern_v under_o he_o by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n but_o so_o as_o he_o himself_o with_o his_o regal_a sceptre_n do_v rule_n and_o govern_v they_o all_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a pleasure_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o sound_a argument_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v temporal_a king_n have_v whole_o pervert_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o behalf_n in_o that_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o justify_v their_o fact_n therein_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o maccabee_n and_o those_o time_n of_o so_o great_a confusion_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n whilst_o he_o be_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o full_o content_v himself_o to_o be_v only_o a_o spiritual_a king_n to_o rule_v in_o man_n heart_n or_o that_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v erect_v such_o a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n he_o do_v not_o conquer_v the_o devil_n sin_n death_n and_o hell_n and_o thereby_o take_v possession_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n or_o that_o before_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v begin_v to_o reign_v in_o man_n heart_n he_o do_v not_o first_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n beget_v a_o lively_a faith_n in_o it_o or_o that_o whilst_o he_o live_v here_o in_o the_o world_n he_o do_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o for_o our_o sake_n with_o a_o very_a mean_a and_o poor_a estate_n be_v in_o himself_o most_o rich_a because_o he_o be_v god_n and_o in_o his_o humanity_n the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n or_o that_o he_o do_v not_o institute_n and_o ordain_v a_o priesthood_n or_o ministry_n to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o continuance_n and_o augment_v of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n or_o that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v redeem_v through_o faith_n by_o christ_n and_o deliver_v out_o of_o the_o jaw_n of_o hell_n and_o satan_n be_v not_o still_o to_o take_v heed_n and_o beware_v of_o he_o and_o to_o arm_v themselves_o according_o against_o his_o force_n or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n when_o he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n that_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o above_o his_o lord_n but_o that_o whosoever_o will_v be_v a_o perfect_a disciple_n shall_v be_v as_o his_o master_n do_v not_o mean_a that_o his_o apostle_n and_o after_o they_o their_o successor_n archbishop_n bishop_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ministry_n shall_v hold_v their_o service_n and_o office_n under_o he_o to_o do_v as_o he_o do_v when_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n of_o poor_a estate_n and_o subject_a to_o many_o bad_a usage_n and_o injury_n or_o that_o because_o our_o saviour_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n when_o he_o be_v become_v a_o man_n immortal_a and_o glorious_a do_v then_o enlarge_v the_o commission_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o ordain_v by_o they_o a_o succession_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n he_o do_v thereby_o make_v they_o any_o more_o partaker_n of_o his_o regal_a authority_n whereof_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v then_o actual_o possess_v for_o the_o state_n and_o exercise_n thereof_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o free_a and_o unrestrained_a operation_n of_o his_o deity_n than_o he_o make_v their_o natural_a and_o corruptible_a body_n incorrupt_a and_o spiritual_a body_n or_o endow_v they_o in_o this_o life_n with_o any_o of_o that_o glory_n power_n and_o heavenly_a estate_n which_o they_o be_v to_o enjoy_v after_o their_o death_n and_o bless_a resurrection_n or_o that_o the_o apostle_n after_o christ_n death_n not_o exempt_n st._n peter_n do_v not_o find_v their_o estate_n in_o this_o world_n very_o suitable_a to_o their_o master_n whilst_o he_o live_v with_o they_o all_o thing_n happen_v unto_o they_o as_o he_o have_v foretell_v they_o or_o that_o either_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o their_o successor_n either_o then_o or_o since_o that_o time_n can_v challenge_v so_o much_o as_o this_o or_o that_o one_o temporal_a farm_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a function_n more_o than_o their_o master_n have_v or_o that_o either_o they_o be_v themselves_o possess_v with_o as_o their_o own_o before_o they_o be_v call_v to_o that_o ministration_n or_o than_o be_v afterward_o give_v unto_o they_o by_o godly_a emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o other_o devout_a and_o religious_a person_n or_o that_o if_o st._n peter_n have_v know_v himself_o to_o have_v be_v under_o christ_n the_o sole_a temporal_a monarch_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v not_o be_v his_o duty_n to_o have_v make_v the_o same_o know_v at_o least_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o such_o as_o be_v convert_v to_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v honour_v he_o according_o as_o his_o dutiful_a and_o loyal_a subject_n or_o that_o it_o have_v not_o in_o all_o probability_n if_o st._n peter_n mean_v to_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o temporal_a king_n by_o the_o death_n of_o ananias_n and_o sapphira_n be_v much_o more_o expedient_a for_o the_o success_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o those_o day_n if_o he_o have_v use_v such_o his_o regal_a authority_n against_o those_o civil_a magistrate_n which_o be_v enemy_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o all_o that_o preach_v in_o his_o name_n or_o that_o it_o may_v be_v right_o imagine_v with_o our_o dutiful_a regard_n of_o st._n peter_n sincerity_n that_o ever_o he_o will_v have_v be_v so_o earnest_a with_o the_o
disperse_a jew_n to_o have_v submit_v themselves_o for_o the_o lord_n sake_n unto_o king_n and_o other_o governor_n to_o have_v obey_v they_o and_o honour_v they_o if_o he_o have_v know_v they_o to_o have_v have_v temporal_a authority_n because_o they_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v his_o vassal_n or_o that_o it_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o great_a wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o abridge_v in_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n even_o in_o st._n peter_n himself_n that_o great_a power_n and_o authority_n which_o christ_n have_v as_o appear_v by_o his_o word_n when_o he_o say_v that_o if_o he_o have_v think_v it_o fit_a he_o can_v have_v twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n at_o his_o commandment_n to_o have_v defend_v he_o from_o all_o his_o enemy_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n with_o all_o their_o partaker_n in_o that_o perhaps_o the_o apostle_n even_o st._n peter_n himself_o may_v have_v abuse_v it_o or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o more_o than_o probable_a that_o howsoever_o st._n peter_n will_v have_v use_v the_o say_a power_n and_o authority_n if_o he_o have_v have_v it_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v receive_v it_o from_o he_o they_o will_v certain_o have_v make_v great_a havoc_n and_o confusion_n in_o the_o world_n with_o it_o or_o that_o if_o all_o the_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n have_v be_v subject_a to_o st._n peter_n and_o be_v thereupon_o in_o the_o like_a subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o both_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n may_v not_o have_v have_v ready_a at_o their_o commandment_n if_o king_n and_o prince_n have_v do_v their_o duty_n more_o than_o twelve_o legion_n to_o have_v confound_v all_o man_n that_o shall_v have_v disobey_v they_o or_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o as_o absurd_v a_o imagination_n and_o conceit_n for_o any_o man_n to_o think_v that_o christ_n do_v give_v so_o great_a temporal_a authority_n either_o to_o st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n over_o temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n that_o they_o may_v have_v so_o great_a army_n when_o they_o list_v at_o their_o direction_n as_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v hold_v that_o because_o they_o be_v christ_n vicar_n they_o may_v have_v twelve_o legion_n from_o heaven_n to_o do_v they_o service_n if_o perhaps_o temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n shall_v be_v negligent_a or_o refuse_v to_o be_v at_o such_o charge_n at_o their_o commandment_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o kind_n of_o madness_n the_o true_a nature_n of_o christ_n spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n consider_v for_o any_o man_n to_o conceive_v and_o thereupon_o maintain_v that_o any_o such_o omnipotency_n of_o temporal_a power_n in_o st._n peter_n ever_o be_v or_o ever_o shall_v be_v available_a to_o vanquish_v the_o devil_n or_o remove_v he_o out_o of_o his_o palace_n or_o to_o spoil_v he_o of_o all_o his_o principality_n or_o to_o beget_v faith_n in_o the_o child_n of_o god_n or_o to_o erect_v in_o their_o heart_n a_o tabernacle_n for_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v only_o the_o peculiar_a and_o proper_a action_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v our_o spiritual_a king_n and_o of_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o all_o their_o successor_n in_o their_o degree_n and_o as_o they_o be_v his_o spiritual_a minister_n he_o do_v great_o err_v cap._n x._o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o temporal_a authority_n indirect_o over_o king_n and_o prince_n throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o depose_v they_o from_o their_o kingdom_n for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o because_o we_o have_v be_v bold_a to_o use_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o cardinalize_v jesuit_n against_o the_o ridiculous_a canonist_n and_o their_o companion_n the_o new_a sectary_n of_o the_o oratory-congregation_n concern_v the_o pope_n temporal_a authority_n over_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o world_n direct_o we_o may_v not_o do_v he_o so_o much_o injury_n as_o once_o to_o pretend_v that_o he_o favour_v either_o we_o or_o any_o point_n of_o truth_n for_o our_o sake_n that_o we_o defend_v it_o may_v rather_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o for_o a_o singular_a virtue_n his_o bringing_z up_o and_o course_n of_o life_n consider_v if_o he_o study_v not_o to_o impugn_v it_o with_o all_o the_o strength_n that_o he_o have_v either_o of_o his_o wit_n or_o learning_n nevertheless_o albeit_o he_o have_v travel_v exceed_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr romano_n pontifice_fw-la to_o advance_v the_o papacy_n to_o his_o uttermost_a ability_n and_o have_v no_o purpose_n therein_o we_o be_v well_o assure_v to_o give_v we_o any_o advantage_n who_o do_v oppose_v ourselves_o against_o the_o whole_a drift_n of_o those_o his_o book_n yet_o he_o have_v so_o muster_v and_o marshal_v his_o matter_n and_o force_n together_o as_o whilst_o he_o endeavour_v to_o fortify_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o to_o encounter_v the_o assault_n that_o have_v be_v make_v against_o it_o he_o have_v do_v more_o for_o we_o against_o his_o will_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o his_o master_n who_o he_o labour_v to_o uphold_v than_o we_o can_v ever_o have_v expect_v at_o his_o hand_n insomuch_o as_o we_o be_v very_o persuade_v the_o time_n will_v come_v before_o it_o be_v long_o that_o his_o work_n will_v be_v thrust_v into_o the_o catalogue_n librorum_fw-la prohibitorum_fw-la because_o deal_v with_o our_o argument_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o say_a book_n de_fw-la romano_n pontifice_fw-la and_o think_v that_o he_o will_v no_o further_o yield_v to_o the_o truth_n by_o way_n of_o objection_n than_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a sufficient_o to_o refel_v it_o it_o have_v often_o fall_v out_o with_o he_o as_o it_o will_v ever_o do_v with_o all_o impostor_n that_o the_o very_a meaning_n of_o the_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o have_v notwithstanding_o all_o his_o cunning_n very_o much_o prevail_v against_o he_o to_o the_o everlasting_a glory_n of_o she_o own_o name_n and_o forcible_a strength_n to_o discover_v error_n like_v to_o the_o sun_n be_v to_o expel_v darkness_n we_o will_v not_o here_o otherwise_o make_v proof_n hereof_o than_o as_o by_o the_o matter_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n and_o be_v purpose_v to_o prosecute_v we_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n urge_v and_o compel_v for_o albeit_o hitherto_o he_o have_v seem_v to_o have_v join_v with_o we_o as_o he_o have_v indeed_o more_o than_o now_o we_o be_v persuade_v he_o do_v well_o vouchsafe_v yet_o foresee_v what_o tempest_n he_o be_v otherwise_o like_a to_o have_v endure_v in_o affirm_v so_o peremptory_o as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o temporal_a authority_n at_o all_o as_o he_o be_v either_o christ_n or_o st_n peter_n vicar_n he_o mince_v his_o matter_n in_o the_o title_n of_o his_o chapter_n to_o that_o purpose_n with_o the_o word_n directè_fw-la whereof_o in_o his_o reason_n he_o never_o make_v mention_n and_o then_o fall_v upon_o this_o issue_n that_o indirectè_fw-la the_o pope_n have_v authority_n over_o all_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o hurry_v they_o hither_o and_o thither_o to_o depose_v and_o remove_v they_o from_o their_o regal_a estate_n and_o dignity_n to_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n according_a to_o his_o own_o pleasure_n to_o release_v their_o subject_n of_o their_o oath_n and_o obedience_n and_o to_o thrust_v they_o into_o all_o rebellion_n treason_n fury_n and_o what_o not_o against_o they_o in_o the_o which_o his_o course_n this_o be_v our_o comfort_n that_o by_o direct_a deal_n the_o cardinal_n do_v find_v no_o way_n or_o mean_n how_o to_o withstand_v the_o truth_n but_o be_v drive_v by_o indirect_a shift_n and_o by-path_n to_o oppose_v his_o labour_n we_o fear_v reclamante_fw-la conscientiâ_fw-la how_o to_o save_v his_o own_o worldly_a credit_n he_o may_v cast_v a_o mist_n upon_o the_o truth_n if_o not_o to_o depress_v it_o which_o be_v not_o in_o his_o power_n yet_o at_o the_o least_o to_o obscure_v it_o to_o darken_v it_o and_o perplex_v it_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a reason_n which_o he_o have_v use_v to_o this_o purpose_n mention_v be_v of_o this_o kind_a and_o consequence_n 6._o bona_fw-la corporis_fw-la the_o good_a thing_n that_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o body_n as_o health_n especial_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o bona_fw-la fortunae_fw-la as_o the_o philosopher_n call_v they_o that_o be_v riches_n and_o all_o other_o worldly_a dignity_n and_o preferment_n whatsoever_o therefore_o the_o call_n of_o physician_n the_o end_n whereof_o be_v the_o health_n of_o man_n body_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o temporal_a calling_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n or_o thus_o natural_a parent_n be_v they_o emperor_n king_n or_o sovereign_a prince_n do_v give_v unto_o their_o child_n their_o
natural_a be_v only_a but_o schoolmaster_n do_v adorn_v by_o instruction_n and_o beautify_v their_o mind_n therefore_o schoolmaster_n be_v more_o to_o be_v honour_v by_o young_a lord_n and_o prince_n than_o be_v their_o lord_n and_o king_n their_o natural_a parent_n or_o thus_o one_o end_n why_o man_n be_v first_o create_v and_o afterward_o bear_v be_v they_o king_n or_o prince_n priest_n or_o private_a person_n be_v to_o live_v in_o the_o world_n but_o for_o the_o support_v of_o man_n life_n husbandry_n and_o many_o other_o occupation_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o necessity_n than_o be_v either_o king_n prince_n lord_n or_o civil_a magistracy_n therefore_o those_o man_n base_a calling_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o calling_n of_o the_o other_o or_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v reason_v thus_o they_o that_o have_v the_o chief_a charge_n of_o soul_n commit_v unto_o they_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v as_o man_n in_o this_o world_n of_o the_o high_a call_v but_o all_o christian_n general_o have_v every_o one_o of_o they_o a_o great_a charge_n commit_v unto_o they_o of_o their_o own_o soul_n than_o any_o sort_n of_o priest_n or_o minister_n have_v therefore_o every_o christian_a be_v in_o that_o respect_n in_o call_v and_o dignity_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o call_v of_o any_o one_o pastor_n priest_n prelate_n or_o pope_n now_o after_o he_o have_v dally_v with_o such_o sophistication_n and_o comparison_n betwixt_o the_o body_n and_o the_o soul_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o fall_v upon_o some_o particular_n the_o more_o full_o as_o he_o say_v to_o express_v what_o he_o have_v former_o deliver_v the_o sum_n of_o which_o particular_n be_v 6._o that_o although_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o be_v pope_n can_v ordinariè_fw-la ordinary_o depose_v temporal_a prince_n or_o make_v civil_a law_n or_o judge_v de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la yet_o in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la he_o may_v do_v they_o all_o and_o this_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o prove_v by_o five_o main_a reason_n ground_v god_n know_v upon_o very_o weak_a foundation_n 7._o of_o which_o his_o odd_a number_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o this_o which_o follow_v be_v the_o first_o civil_a power_n be_v subject_a to_o spiritual_a power_n when_o they_o be_v both_o part_n of_o a_o christian_a commonwealth_n therefore_o the_o spiritual_a prince_n may_v command_v temporal_a prince_n and_o dispose_v of_o their_o temporal_a affair_n in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la bonum_fw-la spiritual_fw-la n_o order_n to_o a_o spiritual_a good_a the_o antecedent_n of_o which_o argument_n may_v brief_o be_v refute_v for_o aught_o that_o he_o have_v say_v to_o justify_v it_o in_o manner_n as_o follow_v for_o in_o say_v that_o this_o subjection_n of_o the_o temporal_a power_n to_o the_o spiritual_a be_v but_o where_o both_o these_o power_n be_v part_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o christian_a commonwealth_n he_o make_v the_o estate_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n inferior_a and_o worse_o than_o the_o estate_n of_o those_o that_o be_v infidel_n who_o political_a power_n be_v no_o part_n of_o any_o christian_a commonwealth_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a again_o to_o prefer_v the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o honour_n and_o dignity_n in_o this_o world_n before_o the_o temporal_a authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o prefer_v the_o poor_a and_o base_a estate_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n here_o upon_o earth_n subject_n to_o many_o want_n oppression_n and_o injury_n before_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o that_o king_n have_v their_o authority_n and_o call_v from_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v god_n whereas_o all_o minister_n even_o st._n peter_n himself_o and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n be_v but_o christ_n vicar_n and_o substitute_n as_o he_o be_v man_n subject_n to_o the_o say_a want_n misery_n and_o oppression_n moreover_o in_o that_o every_o soul_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o st._n paul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o temporal_a prince_n and_o that_o they_o must_v be_v so_o not_o because_o of_o wrath_n only_o but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o point_n of_o subjection_n there_o specify_v be_v command_v to_o all_o man_n to_o be_v observe_v &_o sacerdotibus_fw-la &_o monachis_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la saecularibus_fw-la to_o bishop_n and_o monk_n 13._o and_o not_o to_o secular_a priest_n only_a as_o chrysostom_n say_v by_o our_o interpretation_n add_v to_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n etiamsi_fw-la apostolus_fw-la sis_fw-la si_fw-la evangelista_n si_fw-la propheta_fw-la sive_fw-la cuique_fw-la tandem_fw-la fueris_fw-la although_o thou_o be_v a_o apostle_n or_o a_o evangelist_n or_o a_o prophet_n or_o whosoever_o thou_o be_v and_o because_o for_o aught_o we_o have_v read_v none_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v herein_o dissent_v from_o chrysostom_n we_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v very_o plain_a and_o evident_a to_o our_o understanding_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n to_o be_v exercise_v in_o this_o world_n by_o any_o manner_n of_o ecclesiastical_a person_n whosoever_o be_v inferior_a and_o of_o a_o low_a degree_n than_o be_v the_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n for_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o ecclesiastical_a person_n whether_o apostle_n evangelist_n prophet_n bishop_n or_o priest_n either_o regular_a or_o secular_a can_v exempt_v they_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n it_o must_v follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o it_o be_v subject_a and_o inferior_a to_o their_o temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n another_o of_o the_o cardinal_n reason_n whereby_o he_o will_v glad_o prove_v the_o pope_n indirect_a temporal_a power_n to_o omit_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o absurd_a trifle_n about_o the_o first_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o very_a traitorous_a position_n never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o principal_a ancient_a father_n for_o how_o earnest_n soever_o he_o seem_v before_o in_o refute_v their_o opinion_n who_o hold_v that_o no_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v if_o they_o be_v infidel_n he_o think_v he_o be_v able_a to_o shift_v off_o that_o in_o effect_n with_o his_o juggle_n and_o indirect_a fetch_n these_o be_v his_o traitorous_a word_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o tolerate_v a_o king_n 7._o be_v a_o infidel_n or_o a_o heretic_n if_o he_o endeavour_v to_o draw_v his_o subject_n unto_o his_o heresy_n or_o infidelity_n but_o to_o judge_v whether_o a_o king_n do_v draw_v his_o subject_n to_o heresy_n or_o no_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o pope_n unto_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o judge_v whether_o a_o king_n be_v to_o be_v depose_v or_o not_o concern_v the_o assumption_n of_o this_o argument_n touch_v the_o presuppose_a charge_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v have_v a_o fit_a occasion_n to_o touch_v it_o after_o a_o sort_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n now_o we_o will_v only_o brief_o handle_v the_o falsehood_n of_o his_o proposition_n of_o the_o power_n of_o subject_n over_o their_o sovereign_n where_o after_o he_o have_v abuse_v a_o place_n in_o deuteronomy_n and_o spend_v some_o idle_a conceit_n of_o his_o own_o he_o write_v in_o this_o sort_n although_o christian_n in_o time_n past_a do_v not_o depose_v nero_n and_o dioclesian_n and_o julian_n the_o apostate_n and_o valens_n the_o arrian_n and_o such_o like_a id_fw-la fuit_fw-la quia_fw-la deerant_fw-la vires_fw-la temporales_fw-la christianis_fw-la it_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o christian_n do_v then_o want_v temporal_a force_n for_o that_o otherwise_o they_o may_v lawful_o so_o have_v do_v appear_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 6._o where_o he_o command_v new_a judge_n of_o temporal_a cause_n to_o be_v appoint_v by_o christian_n that_o christian_n may_v not_o be_v compel_v to_o plead_v their_o cause_n before_o a_o judge_n that_o be_v a_o persecutor_n of_o christ_n upon_o which_o text_n the_o cardinal_n make_v this_o gloss_n sicut_fw-la novi_fw-la judices_fw-la constitui_fw-la potuerunt_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o novi_fw-la principes_fw-la &_o reges_fw-la propter_fw-la eandem_fw-la causam_fw-la si_fw-la vires_fw-la adfuissent_fw-la as_o new_a judge_n may_v have_v be_v appoint_v so_o may_v new_a prince_n and_o king_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n if_o the_o christian_n than_o have_v be_v able_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o force_n to_o have_v create_v to_o themselves_o such_o new_a king_n and_o prince_n thus_o the_o cardinal_n who_o undoubted_o be_v bring_v into_o some_o hard_a straight_a or_o else_o he_o will_v never_o have_v write_v in_o this_o sort_n st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n live_v and_o die_v under_o
nero_n who_o be_v a_o persecutor_n and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n have_v teach_v the_o christian_n in_o those_o day_n to_o have_v thrust_v nero_n from_o his_o imperial_a seat_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n if_o they_o have_v be_v able_a certain_o it_o be_v a_o blasphemous_a assertion_n and_o worthy_a of_o as_o great_a a_o censure_n as_o if_o he_o have_v term_v those_o holy_a man_n in_o plain_a term_n dissemble_v traitor_n or_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o have_v be_v write_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n again_o he_o himself_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o gross_o he_o lie_v even_o against_o his_o own_o conscience_n in_o say_v that_o it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o strength_n that_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o other_o persecute_v emperor_n do_v not_o rebel_v against_o they_o tertullian_n in_o express_a term_n affirm_v the_o contrary_a first_n that_o they_o the_o christian_n in_o his_o time_n want_v no_o force_n to_o have_v bear_v arm_n and_o endanger_v the_o whole_a empire_n and_o second_o that_o it_o be_v far_o from_o their_o heart_n so_o to_o do_v because_o they_o have_v be_v teach_v otherwise_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o holy_a gospel_n beside_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o in_o and_o about_o tertullian_n time_n these_o four_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n victor_n zephyrinus_n calixtus_n and_o vrbanus_n so_o as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v in_o effect_n cast_v a_o great_a imputation_n upon_o they_o of_o negligence_n or_o insincerity_n that_o the_o christian_n in_o their_o day_n want_v neither_o number_n nor_o strength_n to_o have_v bridle_v their_o bad_a emperor_n they_o by_o their_o papal_a authority_n do_v not_o depose_v they_o dioclesian_n begin_v his_o empire_n about_o the_o year_n 288._o during_o the_o time_n of_o who_o government_n gaius_n marcellinus_n and_o marcellus_n be_v pope_n when_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n be_v great_o increase_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a no_o man_n live_v either_o pope_n priest_n or_o prelate_n do_v so_o much_o as_o then_o dream_v of_o this_o damnable_a doctrine_n julian_n the_o apostate_n begin_v his_o reign_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 360._o and_o valens_n 8._o year_n after_o he_o in_o who_o time_n liberius_n and_o damasus_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o damasus_n be_v a_o man_n that_o want_v no_o courage_n nevertheless_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o either_o he_o or_o liberius_n ever_o attempt_v to_o excommunicate_v or_o depose_v either_o of_o those_o emperor_n or_o that_o they_o hold_v it_o lawful_a for_o they_o so_o to_o have_v do_v in_o the_o space_n of_o time_n betwixt_o nero_n and_o damasus_n the_o most_o principal_a man_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n live_v as_o justinus_n martyr_n irenaeus_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n athanasius_n jerom_n and_o augustin_n who_o never_o have_v learn_v nor_o do_v in_o their_o time_n teach_v it_o for_o sound_a doctrine_n either_o that_o the_o christian_n have_v authority_n to_o bear_v arm_n against_o their_o sovereign_n or_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v lawful_o depose_v king_n and_o prince_n either_o for_o heresy_n or_o for_o cruelty_n and_o thrust_v their_o subject_n to_o serve_v their_o turn_n into_o such_o furious_a and_o rebellious_a course_n so_o as_o it_o be_v great_a boldness_n for_o the_o cardinal_n of_o his_o own_o head_n to_o broach_v so_o palpable_a a_o untruth_n especial_o see_v it_o carry_v with_o it_o so_o many_o argument_n to_o convince_v his_o want_n herein_o of_o all_o honesty_n sincerity_n and_o conscience_n but_o why_o shall_v we_o be_v so_o earnest_a with_o the_o man_n consider_v that_o although_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o neither_o st._n peter_n not_o st._n paul_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n or_o pope_n ever_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o depose_v such_o emperor_n and_o king_n as_o before_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a through_o the_o number_n and_o force_n of_o christian_n so_o to_o do_v yet_o the_o same_o do_v proceed_v in_o the_o most_o of_o they_o from_o their_o ignorance_n and_o want_n of_o learning_n for_o say_v he_o that_o christian_n if_o they_o have_v be_v able_a may_v so_o have_v do_v be_v apparent_a by_o the_o apostle_n word_n where_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o they_o have_v authority_n to_o make_v judge_n and_o consequent_o that_o if_o they_o have_v be_v able_a they_o may_v have_v thrust_v the_o say_v wicked_a emperor_n from_o their_o throne_n and_o have_v make_v to_o themselves_o new_a king_n of_o their_o own_o assure_o the_o devil_n himself_o do_v never_o abuse_v any_o place_n of_o scripture_n for_o aught_o that_o we_o remember_v so_o palpable_o and_o gross_o as_o the_o cardinal_n do_v this_o and_o therefore_o we_o will_v bestow_v no_o great_a pain_n to_o refute_v he_o it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a brief_o to_o observe_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o jerom_n austin_n ambrose_n and_o chrysostome_n the_o judge_n which_o here_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o be_v only_o such_o as_o may_v by_o way_n of_o arbitrement_n end_v such_o suit_n as_o arise_v among_o christian_n in_o those_o day_n and_o not_o such_o judge_n as_o by_o law_n and_o authority_n may_v have_v compel_v they_o to_o have_v stand_v to_o their_o sentence_n for_o that_o have_v be_v indeed_o to_o have_v encroach_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n which_o be_v far_o from_o the_o apostle_n intent_n and_o meaning_n 6._o and_o therefore_o say_v theodoret_n sciendum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o these_o word_n of_o choose_v arbiter_n do_v not_o repugn_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v to_o the_o roman_n for_o here_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o command_n christian_n to_o resist_v the_o magistrate_n but_o will_v they_o that_o be_v injure_v not_o to_o use_v the_o magistrate_n meaning_n that_o it_o be_v fit_a for_o christian_n to_o compound_v their_o cause_n and_o quarrel_n among_o themselves_o rather_o than_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o their_o profession_n contend_v before_o such_o magistrate_n as_o be_v infidel_n and_o be_v like_a enough_o to_o despise_v and_o contemn_v they_o 6._o because_o they_o can_v not_o better_o agree_v among_o themselves_o and_o the_o cardinal_n be_v own_o doctor_n commenting_z likewise_o upon_o this_o place_n do_v write_v in_o this_o sort_n sed_fw-la videtur_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o that_o which_o be_v here_o say_v by_o the_o apostle_n do_v seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o which_o st._n peter_n say_v be_v subject_n to_o every_o humane_a creature_n for_o god_n 3._o whether_o to_o king_n as_o excel_v or_o to_o ruler_n as_o send_v by_o he_o for_o it_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o prince_n to_o judge_v of_o his_o subject_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o prohibit_v that_o a_o subject_a shall_v submit_v himself_o to_o the_o judgment-seat_n of_o his_o prince_n if_o he_o be_v a_o infidel_n sed_fw-la dicendum_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v answer_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o here_o forbid_v but_o that_o faithful_a man_n live_v under_o prince_n that_o be_v infidel_n may_v appear_v in_o their_o judicial_a seat_n if_o they_o be_v call_v for_o this_o be_v against_o the_o subjection_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o prince_n but_o he_o forbid_v that_o faithful_a man_n do_v not_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n voluntary_o choose_v the_o judgment-seat_n of_o infidel_n but_o if_o these_o authority_n will_v not_o serve_v we_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o present_v against_o he_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o whole_a college_n first_o publish_v in_o rheims_n and_o then_o set_v out_o again_o the_o second_o time_n by_o the_o same_o college_n at_o douai_n approve_v in_o both_o place_n at_o rheims_n by_o petrus_n remigius_n hubertus_n morus_n johannes_n lebesque_fw-la guil._n balbus_n and_o at_o douai_n by_o will._n estius_n barth_n petrus_n judocus_fw-la heylens_n all_o of_o they_o great_a doctor_n of_o divinity_n in_o those_o place_n and_o one_o a_o doctor_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n vicar_n general_a of_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o rheims_n 6._o the_o say_a college_n write_v upon_o these_o word_n but_o brother_n with_o brother_n contend_v in_o judgement_n and_o that_o before_o infidel_n say_v thus_o to_o be_v give_v much_o to_o brabble_v and_o litigiousness_n for_o every_o trifle_n to_o spend_v a_o pound_n rather_o than_o lose_v a_o penny_n the_o apostle_n much_o reprehend_v in_o christian_a men._n for_o a_o christian_a man_n to_o draw_v another_o to_o the_o judgment-seat_n and_o court_n of_o heathen_a prince_n which_o then_o only_o reign_v and_o not_o to_o suffer_v their_o controversy_n and_o quarrel_n to_o be_v take_v up_o among_o themselves_o brotherly_a and_o peaceable_o be_v a_o great_a
church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n bring_v the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o here_o it_o be_v term_v unto_o her_o spiritual_a end_n as_o direct_o and_o full_o as_o either_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n have_v at_o any_o time_n do_v since_o and_o yet_o they_o take_v no_o power_n and_o authority_n upon_o they_o nor_o do_v challenge_v the_o same_o of_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a kingdom_n or_o depose_v of_o prince_n beside_o if_o such_o a_o indirect_a temporal_a power_n be_v so_o necessary_a in_o these_o day_n for_o the_o uphold_v the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o that_o without_o the_o same_o she_o can_v attain_v the_o spiritual_a end_n or_o be_v a_o perfect_a ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n when_o there_o be_v so_o many_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n then_o be_v the_o same_o much_o more_o necessary_a for_o the_o attainment_n of_o the_o same_o end_n in_o the_o say_a time_n of_o christ_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o age_n follow_v for_o 300._o year_n when_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v pagan_n and_o infidel_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n persecutor_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o we_o hope_v we_o may_v be_v bold_a without_o offence_n to_o say_v that_o there_o appear_v then_o no_o such_o necessity_n of_o this_o pretend_a temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n over_o king_n and_o kingdom_n for_o the_o dispose_n of_o they_o and_o that_o nevertheless_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n in_o those_o time_n do_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n and_o be_v as_o perfect_v a_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o it_o be_v now_o under_o the_o pope_n government_n notwithstanding_o all_o his_o temporal_a sovereignty_n wherein_o he_o so_o ruffle_v again_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o it_o can_v be_v show_v out_o of_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o by_o any_o general_a council_n for_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v ever_o imagine_v to_o have_v such_o temporal_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n as_o now_o be_v maintain_v much_o less_o be_v it_o ever_o dream_v of_o during_o that_o time_n that_o such_o authority_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o attain_v the_o spiritual_a end_n whereunto_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o aim_n or_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n ordain_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n can_v not_o be_v perfect_a without_o it_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a shift_n if_o any_o shall_v either_o say_v that_o during_o all_o the_o time_n abovementioned_a first_o the_o apostle_n and_o then_o the_o holy_a bishop_n martyr_n and_o father_n after_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o new_a temporal_a power_n or_o at_o least_o do_v not_o so_o thorough_o consider_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o as_o they_o may_v have_v do_v or_o that_o whilst_o they_o live_v there_o can_v indeed_o no_o such_o matter_n be_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o that_o in_o those_o day_n the_o scripture_n have_v not_o receive_v such_o a_o sense_n and_o meaning_n as_o may_v support_v the_o same_o but_o that_o afterward_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v think_v it_o necessary_a to_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o such_o temporal_a authority_n over_o both_o king_n and_o kingdom_n the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v alter_v but_o be_v this_o shift_n never_o so_o wretched_a or_o miserable_a yet_o for_o aught_o we_o perceive_v they_o be_v in_o effect_n and_o still_o will_v be_v both_o in_o this_o cause_n and_o many_o other_o drive_v unto_o it_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o their_o hand_n a_o very_a rule_n of_o lead_n and_o nose_n of_o wax_n as_o in_o another_o more_o fit_a place_n we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o show_v moreover_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v this_o great_a temporal_a authority_n over_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o preserve_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n here_o upon_o earth_n that_o she_o may_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n assure_o he_o have_v make_v little_a use_n of_o it_o to_o that_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v and_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n of_o christ_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v flourish_v far_o and_o near_o in_o greece_n thracia_n sclavonia_n hungary_n asia_n minor_fw-la syria_n assyria_n egypt_n and_o throughout_o the_o most_o part_n of_o africa_n where_o there_o be_v many_o very_a worthy_a apostolical_a and_o notable_a church_n in_o the_o most_o of_o which_o place_n there_o be_v scarce_o in_o these_o day_n any_o footstep_n or_o visible_a monument_n of_o they_o and_o although_o afterward_o during_o the_o space_n of_o above_o 700._o year_n much_o mischief_n be_v wrought_v in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n better_o know_v unto_o we_o than_o the_o rest_n by_o sundry_a sort_n of_o scythian_n and_o northern_a people_n yet_o after_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v most_o vaunt_v of_o this_o their_o sovereign_a power_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n the_o turk_n gain_v and_o encroach_v more_o upon_o christendom_n still_o retain_v that_o which_o they_o then_o have_v so_o get_v than_o at_o any_o time_n before_o whereby_o it_o be_v to_o we_o very_o evident_a that_o neither_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n ever_o ordain_v that_o the_o mean_n of_o building_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o conservation_n of_o it_o shall_v consist_v in_o the_o temporal_a power_n or_o authority_n of_o any_o of_o their_o successor_n to_o deprive_v emperor_n or_o king_n from_o their_o imperial_a or_o regal_a estate_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v ashamed_a that_o have_v have_v so_o great_a authority_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n extort_a from_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n per_fw-la fas_fw-la &_o nefas_fw-la since_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n time_n they_o have_v make_v no_o better_a use_n of_o it_o but_o suffer_v so_o many_o famous_a country_n and_o kingdom_n to_o be_v utter_o overrun_v and_o waste_v by_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n consider_v that_o they_o pretend_v themselves_o to_o have_v so_o great_a a_o authority_n for_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o only_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o she_o may_v not_o be_v prevent_v of_o her_o spiritual_a end_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o shame_n of_o rome_n who_o forehead_n have_v be_v so_o long_o since_o harden_v or_o ever_o imagine_v that_o almighty_a god_n either_o do_v or_o will_v bless_v her_o usurpation_n and_o insolence_n against_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n for_o any_o good_a to_o his_o church_n other_o than_o must_v accrue_v unto_o she_o through_o her_o persecution_n and_o affliction_n for_o it_o be_v no_o great_a labour_n to_o make_v it_o most_o apparent_a by_o very_a many_o history_n if_o we_o will_v insist_v upon_o it_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o strive_v first_o to_o get_v and_o then_o to_o uphold_v after_o their_o scramble_a manner_n this_o their_o wicked_a and_o usurp_a authority_n of_o trouble_v and_o vex_v christian_n kingdom_n and_o state_n with_o their_o manifold_a oppression_n and_o quarrel_n have_v be_v some_o special_a mean_n whereupon_o the_o saracen_n turk_n and_o pagan_n have_v wrought_v and_o by_o degree_n bring_v so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o christendom_n under_o their_o slavery_n as_o now_o they_o be_v possess_v of_o for_o it_o be_v but_o a_o idle_a and_o a_o vain_a pretence_n that_o the_o preservation_n of_o as_o much_o of_o christendom_n as_o be_v yet_o free_a from_o the_o turk_n and_o paganism_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o authority_n that_o so_o the_o catholic_n church_n may_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o plant_n of_o church_n and_o conservation_n of_o they_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a to_o as_o many_o as_o have_v any_o wit_n experience_n and_o sound_a judgement_n that_o as_o the_o very_a situation_n of_o the_o say_a country_n which_o now_o pagan_n enjoy_v make_v they_o very_o subject_a unto_o the_o incursion_n and_o invasion_n of_o saracen_n and_o turk_n god_n himself_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n have_v his_o finger_n and_o just_a operation_n therein_o so_o through_o his_o most_o merciful_a goodness_n and_o care_n of_o his_o church_n he_o bless_v the_o situation_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n be_v now_o free_a in_o that_o respect_n from_o those_o kind_n of_o violence_n and_o endow_v the_o heart_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n with_o such_o courage_n and_o constancy_n in_o defence_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o their_o kingdom_n as_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v great_o vex_v they_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n they_o do_v mighty_o repel_v the_o force_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o most_o religious_o uphold_v and_o maintain_v the_o
profession_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n may_v more_o true_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o they_o than_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a author_n and_o occasion_n of_o many_o incredible_a mischief_n now_o last_o and_o for_o conclusion_n of_o this_o point_n have_v not_o satan_n with_o all_o power_n and_o sign_n and_o lie_v wonder_n so_o inveigle_v and_o seduce_v the_o heart_n and_o mind_n of_o the_o adherent_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o that_o by_o degree_n they_o leave_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v therefore_o give_v over_o by_o god_n unto_o such_o strong_a delusion_n 11._o that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v among_o many_o other_o of_o the_o gross_a error_n maintain_v by_o they_o we_o may_v marvel_v at_o this_o that_o ever_o they_o dare_v take_v upon_o they_o in_o these_o time_n of_o so_o great_a light_n to_o write_v and_o defend_v it_o with_o such_o resolution_n and_o confidence_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n as_o they_o term_v it_o can_v be_v perfect_a nor_o attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n except_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v the_o say_v temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o depose_v king_n consider_v how_o far_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o true_a mean_n and_o armour_n that_o christ_n our_o spiritual_a king_n have_v indeed_o ordain_v and_o appoint_v for_o the_o edification_n and_o defence_n of_o this_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o for_o the_o attainment_n of_o the_o supernatural_a and_o right_a end_n and_o beauty_n of_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o these_o their_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a conceit_n touch_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o the_o church_n and_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v before_o speak_v and_o the_o true_a spiritual_a end_n of_o the_o church_n be_v by_o teach_v the_o way_n of_o truth_n to_o bring_v as_o many_o as_o possible_o they_o can_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o salvation_n through_o christ_n so_o as_o by_o faith_n they_o may_v become_v true_a member_n of_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v the_o mean_v ordain_v for_o that_o purpose_n do_v contain_v the_o full_a duty_n and_o office_n of_o all_o bishop_n and_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n who_o be_v furnish_v by_o christ_n neither_o with_o temporal_a sword_n nor_o imperial_a authority_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n but_o aught_o to_o carry_v themselves_o towards_o all_o man_n especial_o towards_o king_n and_o prince_n if_o they_o be_v either_o pagan_n or_o enemy_n to_o religion_n as_o christ_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n do_v by_o preach_v and_o pray_v for_o they_o by_o humility_n and_o patience_n to_o endure_v whatsoever_o punishment_n shall_v be_v think_v fit_a to_o be_v impose_v upon_o they_o for_o do_v of_o their_o duty_n and_o never_o to_o intermit_v such_o their_o pain_n and_o diligence_n to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o it_o please_v god_n to_o bless_v those_o their_o ministerial_a so_o great_a labour_n their_o auditor_n of_o all_o sort_n private_a person_n king_n and_o prince_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o so_o satan_n be_v expel_v out_o of_o their_o heart_n christ_n by_o faith_n may_v reign_v in_o they_o to_o the_o effect_n of_o which_o so_o great_a and_o so_o divine_a a_o alteration_n and_o change_v in_o man_n soul_n there_o be_v no_o worldly_a force_n nor_o temporal_a sword_n which_o will_v serve_v the_o turn_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o this_o matter_n do_v write_v in_o this_o sort_n etc._n the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v we_o do_v not_o come_v with_o troop_n of_o man_n to_o promote_v the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o with_o weapon_n of_o another_o nature_n with_o the_o glad_a riding_n of_o the_o gospel_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o believer_n and_o with_o the_o furniture_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o weapon_n be_v not_o weak_a but_o mighty_a through_o god_n and_o able_a to_o cast_v down_o hold_v that_o be_v all_o the_o carnal_a force_n of_o man_n all_o principality_n and_o power_n that_o shall_v presume_v to_o rise_v up_o against_o christ_n and_o through_o the_o assurance_n and_o experience_n which_o both_o st._n paul_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v in_o the_o force_n of_o these_o weapon_n he_o say_v further_a that_o with_o they_o they_o overthrow_v council_n and_o every_o high_a thing_n that_o do_v exalt_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o bring_v into_o captivity_n all_o imagination_n or_o understanding_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n away_o then_o with_o the_o pope_n carnal_a weapon_n and_o with_o all_o their_o illusion_n and_o juggle_n that_o seek_v to_o uphold_v they_o for_o such_o weapon_n be_v never_o ordain_v by_o christ_n for_o his_o apostolical_a warfare_n can._n ix_o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o that_o the_o external_a calling_n in_o this_o world_n of_o those_o man_n as_o minister_n and_o schoolmaster_n that_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o information_n of_o man_n mind_n and_o soul_n be_v superior_a and_o to_o be_v prefer_v in_o honour_n and_o worldly_a dignity_n before_o the_o calling_n of_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o that_o because_o health_n be_v better_a and_o more_o to_o be_v desire_v in_o this_o life_n than_o any_o worldly_a preferment_n therefore_o the_o call_v of_o physician_n who_o be_v ordain_v for_o the_o health_n of_o man_n body_n aught_o to_o be_v superior_a to_o all_o other_o worldly_a calling_n or_o that_o the_o regal_a and_o political_a power_n of_o the_o king_n when_o it_o be_v part_n of_o a_o christian_a commonwealth_n be_v thereby_o bring_v into_o great_a servitude_n and_o thraldom_n than_o be_v the_o regal_a and_o political_a state_n of_o ethnic_a prince_n when_o the_o same_o be_v no_o part_n of_o a_o christian_a kingdom_n or_o that_o to_o prefer_v the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n for_o worldly_a authority_n before_o the_o state_n of_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n be_v not_o in_o effect_n to_o prefer_v the_o humble_a estate_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n live_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n before_o his_o glorious_a estate_n after_o his_o ascension_n and_o before_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o that_o any_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n which_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v do_v either_o free_v they_o or_o any_o of_o their_o successor_n from_o subjection_n to_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o to_o their_o temporal_a authority_n or_o that_o st._n peter_n be_v a_o apostle_n and_o so_o subject_a to_o the_o civil_a sword_n of_o temporal_a authority_n can_v lawful_o by_o any_o indirect_a device_n challenge_v any_o temporal_a power_n and_o dominion_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o that_o have_v be_v to_o have_v extort_a the_o temporal_a sword_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v and_o to_o have_v incur_v again_o the_o commination_n of_o his_o master_n when_o he_o tell_v he_o how_o all_o that_o take_v the_o sword_n shall_v perish_v with_o the_o sword_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o most_o profane_a impiety_n tend_v altogether_o to_o the_o discredit_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o any_o man_n to_o hold_v that_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n have_v so_o instruct_v the_o christian_n in_o their_o time_n as_o that_o they_o know_v if_o they_o have_v be_v able_a they_o may_v without_o offence_n to_o god_n have_v depose_v nero_n from_o his_o empire_n or_o that_o the_o christian_n in_o tertullian_n time_n when_o they_o profess_v that_o notwithstanding_o their_o number_n and_o force_n be_v so_o great_a as_o they_o have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v distress_v very_o great_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o emperor_n be_v then_o persecutor_n they_o may_v not_o so_o do_v because_o christ_n their_o master_n have_v teach_v they_o otherwise_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n for_o all_o true_a christian_n to_o detest_v those_o man_n in_o these_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o hereafter_o who_o contrary_a to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o say_v christian_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v then_o teach_v they_o do_v endeavour_n to_o persuade_v they_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v sufficient_a force_n to_o rebel_n against_o such_o king_n and_o emperor_n at_o the_o pope_n commandment_n and_o to_o thrust_v they_o from_o their_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n or_o that_o this_o devilish_a doctrine_n of_o animate_v subject_n to_o rebellion_n when_o they_o be_v able_a against_o their_o
sovereign_n either_o for_o their_o cruelty_n heresy_n or_o apostasy_n be_v ever_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n abovemention_v during_o the_o reign_n of_o dioclesian_n or_o julian_n the_o apostate_n or_o valens_n the_o arrian_n or_o of_o any_o other_o the_o wicked_a emperor_n before_o they_o or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o wicked_a pervert_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n to_o the_o corinthian_n touch_v their_o choice_n of_o arbitrator_n to_o end_v dissension_n among_o themselves_o rather_o than_o draw_v their_o brethren_n before_o judge_n that_o be_v infidel_n to_o infer_v thereof_o either_o that_o st._n paul_n intend_v thereby_o to_o impeach_v in_o any_o sort_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n as_o if_o he_o have_v mean_v they_o shall_v have_v choose_v such_o judge_n as_o by_o civil_a authority_n may_v otherwise_o have_v bind_v they_o than_o by_o their_o own_o consent_n to_o have_v stand_v to_o their_o award_n or_o to_o authorise_v christian_a subject_n when_o they_o be_v able_a to_o thrust_v their_o lawful_a sovereign_n from_o their_o regal_a seat_n and_o to_o choose_v unto_o themselves_o new_a king_n into_o their_o place_n or_o that_o any_o of_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n or_o godly_a learned_a man_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n do_v ever_o so_o gross_o and_o irreligious_o expound_v the_o say_a place_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o our_o cardinalize_v jesuit_n have_v do_v or_o that_o it_o can_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o either_o christ_n or_o any_o of_o his_o apostle_n do_v at_o any_o time_n teach_v or_o preach_v that_o they_o who_o mean_v to_o be_v baptise_a must_v receive_v that_o sacrament_n upon_o condition_n that_o if_o at_o any_o time_n afterward_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v obedient_a to_o st._n peter_n for_o his_o time_n and_o to_o his_o successor_n they_o be_v to_o lose_v and_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o their_o temporal_a estate_n and_o possession_n or_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v either_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o by_o any_o of_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n or_o show_v in_o any_o ancient_a form_n of_o administration_n of_o baptism_n that_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o such_o covenant_n make_v by_o any_o such_o faithful_a person_n when_o they_o be_v baptise_a or_o require_v of_o they_o to_o be_v make_v by_o any_o that_o baptise_a they_o or_o that_o if_o such_o a_o covenant_n be_v by_o christ_n ordinance_n to_o be_v make_v in_o baptism_n it_o ought_v not_o as_o well_o to_o be_v make_v by_o farmer_n by_o gentleman_n possess_v of_o manor_n and_o by_o lord_n of_o great_a revenue_n and_o possession_n as_o by_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o absurd_a imagination_n to_o think_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v only_o mean_a that_o emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n shall_v be_v receive_v to_o baptism_n upon_o the_o say_a condition_n or_o that_o all_o christian_a man_n ought_v not_o to_o judge_v that_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n if_o they_o have_v know_v of_o any_o such_o bargain_n or_o condition_n in_o baptism_n will_v have_v deal_v as_o faithful_o with_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o st._n peter_n in_o preach_v and_o teach_v the_o same_o as_o now_o our_o cardinal_n and_o other_o such_o like_a person_n of_o the_o roman_a strain_n do_v by_o their_o write_n publish_v and_o maintain_v of_o it_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o either_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n know_v that_o baptism_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o such_o a_o condition_n do_v think_v it_o convenient_a that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v conceal_v not_o only_o whilst_o they_o live_v but_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n afterward_o until_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v grow_v to_o such_o a_o head_n and_o strength_n as_o that_o they_o may_v without_o fear_n of_o any_o inconvenience_n make_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n acquaint_v with_o it_o or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o idle_a conceit_n for_o any_o man_n to_o maintain_v that_o the_o renunciation_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n do_v deprive_v man_n of_o their_o temporal_a land_n and_o possession_n which_o they_o do_v not_o hold_v by_o any_o force_n of_o baptism_n or_o make_v they_o subject_a in_o that_o behalf_n to_o the_o deprivation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o apostasy_n from_o christ_n put_v on_o in_o baptism_n do_v any_o further_o extend_v itself_o than_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o such_o apostate_n in_o this_o life_n in_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v get_v again_o the_o possession_n of_o they_o and_o so_o deprive_v they_o in_o this_o world_n of_o all_o the_o comfort_n and_o hope_v they_o have_v in_o christ_n lead_v they_o on_o to_o the_o bane_n both_o of_o their_o body_n and_o soul_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v or_o that_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v any_o other_o lawful_a mean_n to_o reclaim_v wicked_a heretical_a or_o apostated_a king_n from_o their_o impiety_n heresy_n and_o apostasy_n than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v ordain_v to_o be_v use_v for_o win_a man_n at_o the_o first_o to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n or_o that_o christ_n himself_o while_o he_o live_v do_v attempt_v either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o to_o depose_v the_o emperor_n by_o who_o authority_n he_o be_v himself_o put_v to_o death_n as_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n except_o he_o have_v so_o do_v or_o that_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o church_n do_v not_o attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n without_o the_o deposition_n of_o any_o emperor_n or_o king_n from_o their_o regal_a estate_n or_o that_o ever_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o day_n either_o preach_v or_o write_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a commonwealth_n can_v not_o be_v perfect_a except_o st._n peter_n for_o his_o time_n and_o after_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o depose_v emperor_n and_o king_n that_o the_o church_n may_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n or_o that_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n do_v not_o attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n although_o no_o such_o authority_n be_v then_o either_o challenge_v or_o put_v in_o practice_n or_o that_o the_o church_n can_v have_v attain_v to_o that_o her_o spiritual_a end_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o the_o say_v temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n have_v be_v then_o necessary_a for_o the_o attain_n of_o it_o or_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v propound_v a_o spiritual_a end_n unto_o his_o church_n and_o leave_v no_o other_o necessary_a mean_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o it_o than_o such_o as_o can_v not_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n either_o in_o their_o day_n or_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o or_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 300._o year_n be_v wonderful_o oppress_v with_o sundry_a persecution_n do_v not_o attain_v to_o their_o spiritual_a end_n without_o this_o dream_v off_o temporal_a authority_n of_o depose_v king_n and_o emperor_n than_o their_o mortal_a enemy_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o but_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n which_o they_o teach_v to_o their_o subject_n or_o that_o this_o new_a doctrine_n of_o the_o necessity_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v have_v temporal_a authority_n either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o to_o depose_v emperor_n and_o king_n for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o or_o that_o else_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v to_o her_o spiritual_a end_n be_v ever_o hear_v of_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n either_o in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a history_n or_o in_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n by_o we_o abovemention_v or_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o their_o adherent_n whilst_o they_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n can_v attain_v her_o spiritual_a end_n except_o they_o have_v temporal_a authority_n indirect_o to_o depose_v for_o some_o cause_n emperor_n king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n be_v more_o learned_a now_o than_o either_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v and_o that_o they_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n better_a than_o either_o they_o the_o say_v ancient_a father_n do_v or_o the_o apostle_n that_o write_v they_o who_o for_o aught_o that_o be_v know_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n never_o preach_v teach_v or_o intend_v to_o have_v any_o such_o doctrine_n collect_v out_o of_o their_o write_n and_o work_n or_o that_o it_o may_v without_o great_a impiety_n be_v once_o imagine_v that_o if_o such_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o say_v
to_o a_o house_n to_o a_o ship_n and_o that_o therefore_o she_o must_v have_v but_o one_o captain_n one_o humane_a head_n one_o king_n one_o pastor_n one_o housholder_n and_o one_o pilot_n that_o although_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o proper_a head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n that_o govern_v the_o same_o spiritual_o yet_o she_o have_v need_n of_o one_o visible_a head_n or_o otherwise_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n pastor_n doctor_n and_o minister_n be_v needless_a that_o although_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v one_o underneath_o he_o by_o who_o she_o may_v be_v govern_v as_o a_o king_n when_o he_o be_v present_a may_v govern_v his_o kingdom_n himself_o but_o be_v absent_a do_v usual_o appoint_v another_o under_o he_o who_o be_v call_v his_o viceroy_n that_o every_o diocese_n and_o province_n have_v her_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n to_o govern_v the_o particular_a church_n under_o they_o within_o their_o several_a charge_n and_o that_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v one_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o all_o last_o that_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n so_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o one_o chief_a bishop_n and_o judge_n upon_o who_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o depend_v many_o more_o be_v the_o reason_n ground_v upon_o divers_a other_o similitude_n which_o our_o adversary_n have_v heap_v up_o together_o to_o uphold_v the_o pope_n authority_n all_o of_o they_o be_v as_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a as_o the_o former_a for_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o manifest_a that_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o a_o host_n well_o order_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n to_o a_o kingdom_n to_o a_o flock_n of_o sheep_n to_o a_o house_n and_o to_o a_o ship_n so_o christ_n only_o be_v intend_v thereby_o to_o be_v her_o only_a general_n her_o only_a head_n her_o only_a king_n her_o only_a shepherd_n her_o only_a housholder_n and_o her_o only_a pilot._n neither_o can_v any_o other_o thing_n be_v enforce_v from_o the_o word_n mention_v of_o one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n but_o that_o as_o we_o be_v only_o justify_v through_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o baptism_n ordain_v whereby_o we_o have_v our_o first_o entrance_n into_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o be_v make_v particular_a member_n of_o his_o catholic_n church_n beside_o in_o the_o like_a sense_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o host_n well_o order_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n to_o a_o kingdom_n to_o a_o flock_n to_o a_o house_n to_o a_o ship_n so_o may_v the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o it_o be_v resemble_v to_o they_o all_o and_o the_o aforesaid_a title_n respective_o attribute_v unto_o he_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v a_o host_n under_o he_o well_o order_v and_o he_o be_v the_o general_n of_o it_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v but_o as_o one_o body_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o head_n be_v the_o life_n of_o all_o man_n from_o who_o as_o from_o their_o head_n they_o have_v their_o sense_n understanding_n and_o motion_n the_o whole_a universal_a world_n be_v but_o his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o be_v the_o king_n of_o it_o rule_v and_o dispose_v it_o as_o seem_v best_a to_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v with_o he_o but_o one_o flock_n and_o he_o be_v the_o shepherd_n of_o it_o all_o man_n in_o it_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n to_o who_o he_o give_v food_n and_o sustentation_n in_o due_a season_n also_o he_o order_v all_o the_o affair_n in_o the_o world_n as_o a_o good_a housholder_n do_v order_n and_o direct_v all_o the_o business_n and_o trouble_n appertain_v to_o his_o family_n likewife_n the_o whole_a world_n may_v apt_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o ship_n in_o that_o the_o state_n of_o all_o mankind_n live_v in_o it_o be_v subject_a as_o a_o ship_n on_o the_o sea_n unto_o all_o manner_n of_o contrary_a wind_n tempest_n and_o storm_n of_o which_o ship_n be_v not_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n the_o only_a pilot_n the_o world_n can_v not_o subsist_v and_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o fold_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n so_o may_v the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v compare_v unto_o a_o fold_n in_o that_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o mankind_n general_o his_o heavenly_a care_n and_o providence_n evermore_o protect_v they_o moreover_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n one_o head_n or_o spiritual_a ruler_n of_o it_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n one_o christian_a faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o gospel_n one_o truth_n one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a form_n or_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o several_a theological_a virtue_n and_o one_o inheritance_n which_o be_v all_o of_o they_o to_o be_v teach_v embrace_v and_o expect_v by_o all_o that_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o universal_a kingdom_n in_o all_o the_o world_n the_o creator_n of_o it_o be_v the_o sole_a emperor_n and_o governor_n of_o it_o one_o moral_a faith_n one_o nature_n of_o truth_n to_o be_v observe_v among_o all_o one_o rule_n and_o nature_n of_o justice_n one_o moral_a law_n one_o nature_n of_o equity_n one_o kind_a form_n or_o nature_n of_o all_o the_o several_a virtue_n both_o moral_a and_o intellectual_a which_o be_v to_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n as_o occasion_n require_v in_o this_o one_o empire_n by_o as_o many_o as_o expect_v from_o christ_n their_o emperor_n any_o happy_a success_n in_o their_o worldly_a affair_n but_o as_o all_o these_o unity_n in_o the_o temporal_a monarchy_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o warrant_v this_o assertion_n that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o temporal_a king_n or_o emperor_n under_o christ_n to_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n so_o the_o aforesaid_a spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a unity_n be_v not_o able_a to_o establish_v or_o uphold_v this_o inference_n that_o one_o pope_n must_v of_o necessity_n have_v the_o government_n under_o christ_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n also_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n that_o god_n make_v all_o mankind_n of_o one_o adam_n to_o signify_v that_o he_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o depend_v upon_o one_o why_o may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o be_v collect_v that_o he_o mean_v that_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v depend_v upon_o one_o emperor_n for_o cause_n temporal_a as_o upon_o one_o pope_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a likewise_o it_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a conceit_n that_o our_o jesuit_n maintain_v when_o he_o say_v that_o although_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v one_o underneath_o he_o by_o who_o she_o may_v be_v govern_v as_o a_o king_n when_o he_o be_v present_a may_v govern_v his_o kingdom_n himself_o and_o when_o he_o be_v absent_a appoint_v his_o viceroy_n of_o likelihood_n this_o fellow_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v sometime_o absent_a from_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v his_o grand_a deputy_n for_o otherwise_o by_o his_o own_o example_n christ_n may_v govern_v the_o catholic_n church_n without_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o king_n rule_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n need_v no_o viceroy_n that_o christ_n be_v never_o absent_a from_o his_o church_n but_o do_v by_o his_o power_n grace_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n still_o defend_v and_o protect_v it_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o his_o own_o word_n where_o he_o say_v 20._o lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o tell_v his_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v to_o depart_v from_o they_o meaning_n that_o they_o must_v be_v deprive_v of_o his_o corporal_a presence_n but_o do_v he_o signify_v unto_o they_o that_o for_o their_o comfort_n he_o will_v leave_v st._n peter_n in_o his_o place_n and_o after_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n st._n peter_n successor_n to_o govern_v his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n no_o such_o matter_n these_o be_v our_o saviour_n christ_n word_n 7._o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o you_o that_o i_o go_v away_o for_o if_o i_o go_v not_o away_o the_o comforter_n will_v not_o come_v unto_o you_o but_o if_o i_o depart_v 13._o i_o will_v send_v he_o unto_o you_o again_o when_o he_o be_v come_v which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o will_v lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n 17._o again_o i_o will_v pray_v to_o my_o father_n and_o he_o
shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 26._o again_o the_o comforter_n which_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o the_o father_n will_v send_v in_o my_o name_n he_o shall_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n 18._o and_o again_o i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_o but_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o which_o he_o do_v continual_o when_o he_o uphold_v his_o church_n daily_o against_o satan_n and_o all_o that_o do_v malign_v it_o so_o as_o we_o may_v far_o more_o right_o and_o safe_o term_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v christ_n vicar-general_n over_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n than_o we_o may_v ascribe_v that_o title_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v ever_o present_a and_o ready_a not_o only_o to_o defend_v the_o church_n general_o but_o to_o aid_v and_o comfort_v every_o particular_a member_n of_o it_o wheresoever_o they_o be_v disperse_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o we_o suppose_v the_o pope_n be_v not_o able_a to_o perform_v we_o have_v before_o labour_v to_o make_v it_o manifest_a that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o it_o that_o he_o have_v redeem_v and_o sanctify_v unto_o himself_o his_o church_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o sole_a monarch_n that_o he_o have_v neither_o appoint_v any_o one_o emperor_n under_o he_o to_o govern_v the_o whole_a world_n nor_o any_o one_o priest_n or_o archbishop_n to_o rule_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n that_o as_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n the_o creator_n all_o the_o world_n be_v but_o one_o kingdom_n whereof_o he_o be_v the_o only_a king_n so_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n all_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v disperse_v be_v but_o one_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o the_o say_v one_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o otherwise_o visible_a in_o this_o world_n than_o be_v the_o say_v one_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o creator_n of_o it_o viz._n by_o the_o several_a and_o distinct_a part_n of_o they_o as_o by_o this_o or_o that_o national_a church_n by_o this_o or_o that_o temporal_a kingdom_n for_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v make_v the_o external_a government_n of_o his_o catholic_n church_n suitable_a to_o the_o government_n of_o his_o universal_a monarchy_n over_o all_o the_o world_n have_v by_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n order_v to_o be_v place_v in_o every_o kingdom_n as_o before_o in_o another_o place_n we_o have_v observe_v archbishop_n bishop_n and_o inferior_a minister_n to_o govern_v the_o particular_a church_n therein_o plant_v priest_n minister_n in_o every_o particular_a parish_n and_o over_o they_o bishop_n within_o their_o several_a diocese_n as_o likewise_o archbishop_n to_o have_v the_o inspection_n and_o charge_n over_o all_o the_o rest_n according_a to_o the_o platform_n ordain_v in_o substance_n by_o himself_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o he_o have_v in_o like_a manner_n appoint_v king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n with_o their_o inferior_a magistrate_n of_o divers_a sort_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v his_o people_n under_o he_o in_o every_o kingdom_n country_n and_o sovereign_a principality_n some_o of_o their_o say_a inferior_a magistrate_n have_v authority_n from_o their_o sovereign_n in_o particular_a parish_n some_o in_o hundred_o some_o in_o shire_n or_o country_n and_o some_o in_o government_n of_o large_a extent_n there_o be_v among_o they_o all_o divers_a degree_n of_o person_n one_o over_o another_o and_o their_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n excel_v they_o all_o in_o power_n and_o authority_n as_o the_o person_n appoint_v by_o god_n to_o rule_v and_o direct_v all_o their_o subject_n of_o what_o call_v soever_o in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o authority_n and_o magistracy_n which_o they_o have_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o we_o can_v but_o wonder_n as_o well_o at_o our_o say_a jesuit_n where_o he_o say_v that_o although_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o proper_a head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n that_o govern_v the_o same_o spiritual_o yet_o she_o have_v need_n of_o one_o visible_a head_n or_o otherwise_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n pastor_n doctor_n and_o minister_n be_v needless_a as_o likewise_o at_o our_o countryman_n harding_n who_o say_v as_o be_v above-noted_n that_o if_o god_n have_v not_o defer_v to_o one_o man_n that_o be_v to_z peter_z and_o his_o successor_n the_o rule_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v have_v bring_v among_o his_o faithful_a people_n that_o unruly_a confusion_n which_o be_v call_v a_o anarchy_n for_o be_v these_o their_o vain_a conceit_n and_o imagination_n true_a then_o will_v it_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n follow_v that_o albeit_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o proper_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v christ_n that_o create_v it_o yet_o the_o same_o have_v need_n of_o one_o visible_a monarch_n or_o otherwise_o emperor_n and_o all_o other_o king_n prince_n and_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v needless_a or_o otherwise_o christ_n shall_v have_v leave_v among_o his_o people_n throughout_o the_o world_n that_o unruly_a confusion_n and_o destruction_n of_o all_o commonwealth_n so_o much_o abhor_v of_o prince_n which_o the_o grecian_n call_v a_o anarchy_n which_o be_v a_o state_n for_o lack_v of_o order_n in_o governor_n without_o any_o government_n at_o all_o the_o fondness_n of_o which_o two_o consequent_n do_v so_o plain_o argue_v the_o folly_n and_o falsehood_n of_o the_o two_o former_a as_o we_o need_v no_o other_o refutation_n of_o they_o for_o if_o all_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n will_v banish_v the_o pope_n with_o his_o usurp_v authority_n as_o the_o monarchy_n of_o brittany_n have_v do_v and_o retain_v under_o they_o the_o apostolical_a form_n of_o church-government_n by_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n with_o other_o degree_n of_o minister_n as_o before_o we_o have_v divers_a time_n specify_v they_o shall_v find_v the_o church_n in_o their_o several_a dominion_n as_o well_o govern_v by_o they_o the_o say_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n without_o one_o pope_n to_o rule_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n as_o they_o have_v experience_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o their_o own_o regal_a and_o sovereign_a form_n of_o government_n in_o their_o several_a kingdom_n and_o country_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o one_o monarch_n over_o all_o the_o world_n to_o command_v or_o direct_v they_o and_o for_o a_o example_n not_o to_o be_v control_v to_o make_v this_o good_a that_o here_o we_o affirm_v we_o leave_v unto_o they_o god_n be_v own_o form_n both_o of_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n establish_v by_o himself_o among_o his_o own_o people_n the_o jew_n nay_o why_o shall_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n notwithstanding_o the_o mist_n and_o darkness_n wherewith_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v daily_o seek_v to_o dim_v their_o eye_n have_v have_v long_o since_o a_o glimpse_n of_o this_o light_n and_o truth_n about_o 400._o and_o some_o odd_a year_n since_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o second_o and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o richard_n the_o first_o both_o of_o they_o king_n of_o england_n first_o baldwin_n and_o then_o hubertus_n be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n there_o be_v a_o mighty_a controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o erect_n of_o a_o new_a cathedral_n church_n in_o lambeth_n the_o say_v king_n and_o archbishop_n have_v a_o resolution_n utter_o to_o banish_v out_o of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o pope_n authority_n if_o the_o monk_n of_o canterbury_n in_o their_o allegation_n to_o pope_n celestine_n against_o the_o say_a cathedral_n church_n do_v inform_v he_o true_o these_o be_v their_o word_n as_o they_o be_v record_v by_o reginaldus_n one_o of_o the_o say_a monk_n as_o it_o seem_v then_o live_v who_o have_v write_v a_o whole_a book_n of_o that_o matter_n 1._o in_o tantum_fw-la enim_fw-la jam_fw-la opus_fw-la processit_fw-la quod_fw-la ibi_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la decanus_n praepositus_fw-la &_o plusquam_fw-la quadraginta_fw-la canonici_fw-la de_fw-la bonis_fw-la cantuariensis_n ecclesiae_fw-la fundati_fw-la genere_fw-la nobiles_fw-la divitiis_fw-la affluentes_fw-la cognati_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o pontificum_fw-la quidam_fw-la ipsi_fw-la regi_fw-la adhaerent_fw-la quidam_fw-la fisci_fw-la negotia_fw-la administrantes_fw-la familiares_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o iisdem_fw-la confoederati_fw-la adversuss_v tantos_fw-la &_o tale_n quid_fw-la poterit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la cantuariensis_n certè_fw-la timendum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la cantuariensis_n ecclesiae_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la avertat_fw-la ne_fw-la huius_fw-la rei_fw-la occasione_n sedis_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la autoritati_fw-la in_o partibus_fw-la anglicanis_fw-la derogetur_fw-la quùm_fw-la enim_fw-la fundaretur_fw-la canonica_n illa_fw-la vox_fw-la erat_fw-la omnium_fw-la sententia_fw-la singulorum_fw-la ut_fw-la ibi_fw-la essent_fw-la
universal_a dominion_n over_o all_o the_o world_n temporaelitèr_n temporal_o and_o likewise_o sufficient_a power_n to_o institute_v and_o appoint_v one_o emperor_n under_o he_o as_o his_o substitute_n to_o rule_v the_o whole_a world_n they_o use_v this_o argument_n ibid._n summus_n pontifex_fw-la instituit_fw-la ac_fw-la confirmat_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la sed_fw-la imperator_fw-la habet_fw-la dominium_fw-la universale_fw-la temporaliter_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la ergo_fw-la &_o papa_n habet_fw-la hoc_fw-la idem_fw-la dominium_fw-la temporaliter_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v ordain_v and_o confirm_v the_o emperor_n but_o the_o emperor_n have_v universal_a dominion_n temporal_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o very_a same_o temporal_a dominion_n and_o about_o ten_o year_n since_o one_o andrew_n hoy_o the_o greek_a professor_n at_o douai_n make_v a_o oration_n de_fw-fr novae_fw-la apud_fw-la europeos_n monarchiae_fw-la pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la utilitate_fw-la take_v upon_o he_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v the_o fit_a person_n of_o all_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o europe_n to_o be_v advance_v unto_o this_o great_a monarchy_n but_o what_o shall_v we_o trouble_v ourselves_o with_o this_o point_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n we_o suppose_v will_v great_o scorn_v to_o be_v the_o pope_n vassal_n and_o the_o emperor_n that_o now_o be_v or_o that_o shall_v succeed_v he_o hereafter_o as_o likewise_o all_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o the_o world_n may_v see_v most_o evident_o how_o gross_o and_o shameful_o they_o be_v abuse_v and_o how_o notable_o they_o neglect_v the_o greatness_n of_o their_o own_o calling_n especial_o they_o who_o have_v be_v heretofore_o or_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o emperor_n in_o that_o they_o do_v intermeddle_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o with_o the_o pope_n or_o receive_v from_o he_o either_o their_o confirmation_n or_o coronation_n in_o that_o thereby_o he_o presume_v most_o ridiculous_o and_o without_o any_o show_n of_o truth_n to_o challenge_v they_o for_o his_o servant_n and_o vassal_n it_o have_v be_v before_o show_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o cardinalize_v jesuit_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o temporal_a possession_n at_o all_o but_o such_o as_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n in_o consideration_n whereof_o seeing_z that_o now_o they_o insult_v so_o notable_o over_o they_o all_o both_o prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n be_v so_o far_o from_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o emperor_n subject_n or_o to_o hold_v their_o say_a possession_n either_o of_o he_o or_o of_o any_o king_n that_o bestow_v they_o upon_o they_o we_o do_v very_o think_v that_o the_o say_v prince_n king_n and_o emperor_n who_o have_v be_v so_o beneficial_a to_o the_o say_a bishop_n shall_v never_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o that_o princely_a magnanimity_n and_o prowess_n which_o their_o high_a place_n do_v require_v nor_o free_v their_o sceptre_n from_o the_o thraldom_n and_o base_a subjection_n to_o their_o usurp_a authority_n until_o either_o they_o take_v from_o they_o what_o before_o they_o give_v they_o or_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o more_o dutiful_a acknowledgement_n of_o their_o duty_n unto_o they_o and_o what_o we_o say_v of_o the_o pope_n we_o likewise_o do_v hold_v concern_v all_o the_o clergy_n beside_o in_o europe_n or_o elsewhere_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v either_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o subjection_n unto_o their_o temporal_a sovereign_n under_o who_o they_o live_v or_o deny_v to_o hold_v the_o possession_n of_o their_o several_a church_n of_o their_o say_a sovereign_n or_o to_o do_v they_o homage_n for_o the_o same_o they_o may_v lawful_o in_o our_o judgement_n not_o only_o resume_v the_o say_v possession_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n but_o likewise_o proceed_v against_o they_o as_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o their_o several_a law_n but_o this_o be_v a_o digression_n for_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n we_o undertake_v to_o deal_v with_o those_o only_o who_o though_o they_o maintain_v the_o pope_n general_a supremacy_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o they_o deny_v upon_o many_o weighty_a reason_n that_o god_n do_v ever_o ordain_v any_o one_o emperor_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n but_o how_o long_o they_o will_v deny_v it_o we_o know_v not_o in_o that_o the_o principal_a jesuit_n himself_o write_v thus_o utrum_fw-la expediret_fw-la omnes_fw-la provincias_fw-la mundi_fw-la etc._n etc._n utrum_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o all_o the_o province_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o one_o chief_a king_n in_o thing_n politic_a although_o the_o same_o be_v not_o necessary_a it_o may_v be_v a_o question_n mihi_fw-la tamen_fw-la omnino_fw-la expedire_fw-la videtur_fw-la si_fw-la possit_fw-la eo_fw-la perveniri_fw-la sine_fw-la injustitiâ_fw-la &_o bellicis_fw-la cladibus_fw-la yet_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o expedient_a if_o such_o a_o monarchical_a government_n over_o all_o the_o world_n may_v be_v get_v without_o injustice_n and_o such_o calamity_n and_o misery_n as_o usual_o follow_v war._n what_o this_o jesuit_n do_v incline_v unto_o it_o be_v hereby_o evident_a but_o in_o that_o he_o confess_v that_o such_o a_o monarchical_a civil_a government_n be_v not_o necessary_a that_o be_v enough_o for_o our_o purpose_n because_o hereby_o it_o likewise_o follow_v as_o before_o we_o have_v show_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v in_o every_o respect_n as_o little_a necessary_a can._n x._o and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v affirm_v under_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o that_o can_v be_v true_o ground_v upon_o natural_a reason_n or_o philosophy_n that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n shall_v have_v show_v himself_o to_o have_v have_v no_o discretion_n except_o he_o have_v leave_v one_o chief_a bishop_n to_o have_v govern_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n or_o that_o except_o he_o appoint_v one_o to_o the_o say_a end_n he_o shall_v as_o a_o person_n void_a of_o providence_n have_v leave_v his_o faithful_a people_n in_o a_o miserable_a confusion_n and_o without_o any_o government_n at_o all_o or_o that_o any_o of_o all_o the_o argument_n that_o may_v be_v deduce_v from_o philosophy_n and_o natural_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o one_o man_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n be_v not_o as_o forcible_a to_o prove_v that_o one_o king_n or_o emperor_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o rule_n and_o government_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o cause_n temporal_a or_o that_o any_o of_o the_o philosopher_n ever_o mean_v to_o have_v their_o reason_n allege_v by_o they_o to_o prove_v that_o in_o every_o particular_a country_n the_o monarchical_a form_n of_o temporal_a government_n be_v the_o best_a to_o be_v extend_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v either_o one_o bishop_n over_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n whereof_o they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n or_o one_o emperor_n over_o all_o the_o world_n or_o that_o because_o all_o man_n have_v their_o beginning_n from_o adam_n it_o do_v not_o as_o well_o follow_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o emperor_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n as_o one_o bishop_n over_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n or_o that_o aaron_n be_v any_o more_o a_o figure_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n that_o they_o several_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v govern_v the_o whole_a church_n than_o king_n david_n be_v of_o augustus_n the_o emperor_n and_o his_o successor_n that_o they_o several_o in_o their_o time_n shall_v have_v commit_v unto_o they_o the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o that_o the_o resemblance_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o a_o host_n well_o order_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n to_o a_o kingdom_n to_o a_o fold_n to_o a_o house_n to_o a_o ship_n may_v not_o fit_o be_v apply_v as_o well_o to_o the_o universal_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o unto_o the_o church_n and_o so_o consequent_o as_o well_o to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o he_o be_v the_o general_n of_o that_o host_n the_o head_n of_o that_o body_n the_o king_n of_o that_o kingdom_n the_o shepherd_n of_o that_o flock_n the_o housholder_n of_o that_o family_n and_o the_o pilot_n of_o that_o ship_n as_o may_v these_o title_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o he_o as_o he_o be_v the_o only_a archbishop_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n viz._n that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a general_n of_o this_o host_n the_o only_a head_n of_o this_o body_n the_o only_a king_n of_o this_o kingdom_n the_o only_a shepherd_n of_o this_o flock_n the_o only_a housholder_n of_o this_o family_n and_o the_o only_a pilot_n of_o this_o ship_n or_o that_o the_o say_v unity_n concern_v the_o
for_o the_o lombard_n beginning_n to_o trouble_n rome_n and_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o crave_v aid_n from_o the_o say_a emperor_n who_o they_o have_v so_o abuse_v they_o leave_v their_o own_o sovereign_n under_o pretence_n that_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o war_n with_o the_o saracen_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o assist_v they_o and_o procure_v assistance_n from_o france_n 2._o first_o by_o carolus_n martellus_n and_o then_o by_o pepin_n his_o son_n the_o say_v stephen_n the_o second_o have_v bind_v the_o say_v pepin_n as_o it_o seem_v by_o a_o oath_n that_o if_o he_o overcome_v the_o lombard_n all_o that_o appertain_v to_o the_o exarchate_o of_o ravenna_n 3._o which_o have_v late_o be_v the_o emperor_n may_v be_v annex_v to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v afterward_o by_o he_o perform_v according_o suitable_a hereunto_o be_v the_o proceed_n of_o pope_n adrian_n the_o first_o scotus_n who_o be_v again_o trouble_v with_o the_o lombard_n contractus_fw-la obtain_v help_v from_o carolus_n magnus_fw-la by_o who_o come_v into_o italy_n 1._o the_o lombard_n be_v short_o subdue_v and_o the_o pope_n estate_n great_o advance_v but_o the_o emperor_n be_v be_v in_o effect_n utter_o overthrow_v concern_v his_o interest_n and_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v before_o in_o those_o part_n for_o the_o say_v carolus_n have_v vanquish_v the_o lombard_n 781._o and_o none_o else_o there_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v he_o he_o cause_v the_o say_a pope_n to_o anoint_v his_o son_n pepin_n king_n of_o italy_n 28._o and_o so_o return_v into_o france_n but_o abo●●_n four_o year_n after_o leo_n the_o three_o be_v pope_n and_o afterward_o fall_v into_o so_o great_a hatred_n among_o the_o roman_n 800._o as_o he_o hardly_o escape_v they_o with_o his_o life_n he_o the_o say_v leo_n use_v such_o mean_n 30._o as_o that_o he_o bring_v the_o say_v charles_n again_o to_o rome_n before_o who_o leo_n purge_v himself_o by_o his_o oath_n from_o those_o accusation_n 3._o wherewith_o the_o roman_n charge_v he_o in_o requital_n whereof_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o at_o that_o time_n irene_n the_o empress_n and_o wife_n of_o leo_n the_o four_o reign_v at_o constantinople_n after_o her_o husband_n death_n which_o the_o roman_n dislike_v the_o say_a charles_n be_v in_o rome_n create_v emperor_n over_o the_o western_a part_n which_o belong_v before_o to_o the_o ancient_a empire_n touch_v which_o point_n a_o ancient_a historiographer_n write_v in_o this_o sort_n 801._o the_o roman_n who_o be_v in_o heart_n long_o before_o fall_v from_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n take_v this_o occasion_n and_o opportunity_n that_o a_o woman_n have_v get_v the_o dominion_n over_o they_o do_v with_o one_o general_a consent_n proclaim_v king_n charles_n for_o their_o emperor_n and_o crown_v he_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o leo_n the_o three_o salute_v he_o as_o caesar_n and_o emperor_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o exemption_n which_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n the_o four_o for_o their_o preferment_n to_o that_o see_v without_o the_o emperor_n approbation_n rome_n and_o italy_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o ancient_a empire_n a_o new_a empire_n be_v erect_v by_o the_o practice_n and_o treachery_n principal_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v in_o a_o sort_n necessary_a that_o so_o notable_a a_o treason_n against_o the_o say_a ancient_a empire_n shall_v be_v especial_o effect_v by_o such_o notorious_a instrument_n placet_fw-la eye_n jo._n overal_n cap._n vii_o charles_n the_o great_a have_v possess_v himself_o jure_v belli_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o italy_n and_o make_v his_o son_n king_n thereof_o although_o he_o bestow_v much_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o use_v pope_n vrban_n very_o honourable_o yet_o he_o be_v a_o wise_a and_o a_o very_a provident_a prince_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a how_o insolent_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v behave_v themselves_o towards_o their_o former_a emperor_n and_o how_o traitorous_o they_o have_v long_o seek_v to_o make_v they_o odious_a in_o italy_n after_o they_o have_v get_v themselves_o to_o be_v release_v from_o the_o emperor_n authority_n in_o their_o advancement_n to_o that_o see_n that_o he_o may_v therefore_o prevent_v the_o like_a danger_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o secure_a both_o himself_o and_o his_o posterity_n in_o that_o behalf_n he_o so_o use_v the_o matter_n with_o the_o say_a vrban_n as_o he_o bring_v the_o pope_n to_o their_o former_a subjection_n the_o relation_n whereof_o be_v thus_o record_v by_o a_o principal_a upholder_n of_o that_o see_n adrianus_n carolus_n be_v return_v to_o rome_n say_v he_o appoint_v a_o synod_n there_o with_o pope_n adrian_n in_o the_o patriarchal_a palace_n of_o lateran_n which_o synod_n be_v celebrate_v by_o one_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o three_o religious_a bishop_n and_o abbot_n at_o what_o time_n adrian_n the_o pope_n with_o the_o whole_a synod_n deliver_v or_o yield_v to_o charles_n be_v interest_n and_o power_n of_o choose_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o order_v the_o apostolical_a see_n moreover_o he_o the_o say_v adrian_n define_v that_o all_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n through_o all_o particular_a province_n shall_v receive_v from_o the_o say_v charles_n their_o investiture_n and_o that_o none_o shall_v be_v consecrate_a by_o any_o except_o he_o be_v first_o commend_v and_o invest_v bishop_n by_o the_o king_n under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n howbeit_o 1._o when_o charles_n be_v dead_a his_o son_n ludovicus_n be_v as_o it_o seem_v so_o wrought_v upon_o through_o the_o softness_n of_o his_o nature_n as_o he_o be_v content_v that_o the_o roman_n according_a to_o their_o own_o judgement_n shall_v create_v and_o consecrate_v their_o new_a bishop_n so_o it_o be_v do_v without_o tumult_n 1._o or_o bribery_n always_o provide_v that_o the_o new_a bishop_n shall_v advertise_v he_o by_o his_o legate_n as_o touch_v his_o consecration_n and_o conclude_v a_o peace_n with_o he_o or_o as_o another_o say_v that_o legate_n shall_v be_v direct_v unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o to_o his_o successor_n king_n of_o france_n ludovicus_n to_o make_v a_o league_n of_o friendship_n love_n and_o peace_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_n with_o this_o order_n though_o it_o tend_v much_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o long_o satisfy_v as_o brook_v no_o show_n of_o any_o superiority_n over_o they_o but_o be_v still_o shift_v as_o they_o may_v to_o cast_v off_o likewise_o that_o yoke_n which_o otho_n the_o first_o well_o perceive_v when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o empire_n seek_v to_o reform_v as_o know_v how_o dangerous_a their_o ambitious_a humour_n be_v to_o his_o estate_n by_o cause_v leo_n the_o eight_o synodo_n with_o all_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n to_o decree_v in_o a_o synod_n about_o the_o year_n 964._o that_o he_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o successor_n shall_v have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o if_o any_o shall_v attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o this_o rule_n he_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o excommunication_n and_o that_o if_o he_o repent_v not_o than_o he_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o irrevocable_a banishment_n or_o be_v put_v to_o death_n afterwards_o also_o about_o the_o year_n 1046._o sigebert_n henry_n the_o three_o find_v those_o bishop_n still_o to_o persist_v in_o their_o say_v aspire_a course_n of_o exempt_n themselves_o from_o the_o emperor_n authority_n and_o that_o thereby_o there_o grow_v divers_a schism_n and_o quarrel_n in_o their_o election_n chronol_n he_o hold_v a_o council_n at_o sutrium_n not_o far_o from_o rome_n wherein_o it_o be_v determine_v that_o the_o roman_n shall_v no_o more_o intermeddle_v with_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o bishop_n but_o that_o the_o same_o shall_v always_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o emperor_n at_o what_o time_n also_o the_o emperor_n make_v the_o roman_n to_o swear_v that_o from_o thenceforward_a they_o will_v neither_o choose_v nor_o consecrate_v any_o pope_n but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o shall_v tender_v unto_o they_o by_o these_o and_o such_o like_a other_o mean_n from_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a hitherto_o for_o about_o the_o space_n of_o 236_o year_n the_o emperor_n keep_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o some_o reasonable_a good_a obedience_n towards_o they_o but_o not_o without_o their_o own_o great_a trouble_n and_o much_o kick_n and_o repine_v by_o those_o bishop_n at_o it_o as_o grow_v daily_o worse_o and_o worse_o insomuch_o as_o there_o be_v sixty_o of_o they_o if_o not_o more_o who_o succeed_v in_o that_o see_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o year_n beforementioned_a about_o fifty_o of_o they_o do_v so_o degenerate_a from_o the_o virtue_n of_o their_o predecessor_n as_o a_o great_a friend_n in_o his_o
clamour_n of_o the_o canonist_n of_o the_o glossographer_n and_o of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o divine_n that_o take_v their_o part_n in_o the_o pope_n behalf_n upon_o who_o all_o their_o preferment_n credit_n and_o countenance_n do_v depend_v as_o they_o will_v needs_o by_o force_n carry_v the_o bell_n away_o though_o their_o opposite_n each_o of_o they_o be_v very_o confident_a that_o the_o common_a opinion_n sway_v with_o their_o side_n more_o stand_v for_o they_o than_o be_v against_o they_o we_o have_v before_o brief_o touch_v the_o chief_a ground_n and_o reason_n whereupon_o the_o civil_a lawyer_n divide_v among_o themselves_o do_v insist_v and_o therefore_o that_o we_o may_v not_o seem_v partial_a we_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o hear_v the_o canonist_n with_o their_o adherent_n whilst_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v the_o pope_n at_o his_o disposition_n as_o well_o the_o emperor_n as_o any_o other_o the_o mean_a person_n whosoever_o because_o 1._o that_o christ_n have_v all_o power_n give_v he_o 2._o that_o the_o pope_n bless_v the_o emperor_n notabil_n 3._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v anoint_v they_o 4._o that_o the_o church_n triumphant_a have_v but_o one_o prince_n 5._o that_o innocentius_n tell_v the_o king_n of_o france_n that_o he_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o abate_v his_o jurisdiction_n whereby_o it_o be_v collect_v that_o if_o he_o have_v please_v he_o may_v have_v so_o do_v 6._o that_o in_o the_o vacancy_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o pope_n have_v the_o government_n of_o it_o 7._o that_o the_o pope_n translate_v the_o empire_n from_o the_o grecian_n to_o the_o german_n 8._o that_o the_o papacy_n exceed_v the_o empire_n as_o far_o as_o gold_n do_v lead_v or_o as_o man_n do_v beast_n chimaerâ_fw-la 9_o that_o pope_n nicholas_n say_v christ_n give_v to_o st._n peter_n the_o key-carrier_n of_o eternal_a life_n jura_n terreni_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o coelestibus_fw-la imperii_fw-la the_o authority_n both_o of_o the_o earthly_a and_o of_o the_o heavenly_a empire_n 10._o that_o optimum_fw-la optima_fw-la decent_a but_o the_o monarchical_a government_n be_v best_a and_o so_o fit_a for_o the_o pope_n 11._o that_o no_o man_n give_v that_o to_o another_o which_o he_o have_v not_o himself_o but_o the_o pope_n give_v licence_n to_o choose_v the_o emperor_n and_o to_o govern_v in_o temporal_a cause_n 12._o that_o as_o the_o body_n be_v for_o the_o soul_n so_o temporal_a government_n be_v for_o the_o spiritual_a 13._o that_o reason_n teach_v we_o when_o a_o office_n be_v commit_v to_o any_o that_o also_o be_v think_v to_o be_v commit_v without_o the_o which_o it_o can_v be_v execute_v but_o except_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v rule_v all_o the_o world_n he_o can_v discharge_v the_o office_n that_o be_v commit_v unto_o he_o and_o 14._o last_o to_o omit_v infinite_a such_o like_a collection_n this_o argument_n be_v reserve_v after_o many_o other_o by_o a_o great_a clerk_n that_o it_o may_v strike_v home_o viz._n because_o it_o be_v define_v by_o boniface_n the_o eight_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v except_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o argument_n be_v hold_v so_o strong_a as_o it_o carry_v with_o it_o divers_a other_o of_o little_a less_o force_n than_o itself_o as_o that_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o sword_n because_o christ_n bid_v he_o put_v up_o his_o sword_n 2._o ecce_fw-la duo_fw-la gladii_fw-la behold_v here_o be_v two_o sword_n one_o sword_n must_v be_v under_o another_o the_o temporal_a under_o the_o spiritual_a 3._o it_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o general_a course_n of_o thing_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v all_o equal_o their_o immediate_a be_v 4._o the_o spiritual_a power_n ought_v to_o institute_v the_o temporal_a 5._o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o what_o catholic_n can_v deny_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v both_o sword_n the_o one_o actual_o the_o other_o habitual_o to_o be_v draw_v at_o his_o commandment_n we_o have_v not_o quote_v the_o several_a author_n that_o be_v party_n unto_o the_o particular_n which_o we_o have_v touch_v in_o this_o chapter_n because_o twenty_o such_o margin_n will_v not_o contain_v they_o only_o we_o refer_v ourselves_o in_o that_o behalf_n to_o these_o few_o which_o we_o have_v note_v and_o select_v from_o the_o rest_n unto_o which_o number_n if_o we_o shall_v add_v john_n of_o paris_n papali_n bellarmin_n and_o covarruvias_n they_o altogether_o will_v furnish_v a_o man_n with_o divers_a sort_n of_o other_o author_n such_o as_o they_o be_v who_o have_v dispute_v these_o point_n at_o large_a 9_o and_o in_o that_o manner_n as_o we_o be_v drive_v into_o a_o great_a admiration_n that_o any_o man_n of_o understanding_n can_v be_v so_o sottish_a either_o to_o write_v as_o they_o have_v do_v or_o to_o give_v any_o credit_n to_o such_o ridiculous_a jangle_n or_o rather_o indeed_o that_o ever_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n shall_v have_v endure_v such_o impostor_n so_o long_o to_o seduce_v their_o subject_n and_o presumptuous_o to_o shake_v and_o dishonour_v the_o royal_a authority_n give_v they_o from_o god_n to_o have_v bridle_v such_o insolency_n placet_fw-la eye_n jo._n overall_n cap._n xiii_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n especial_o since_o gregory_n the_o seventh_n time_n have_v ruffle_v and_o tyrannize_v as_o before_o we_o have_v show_v and_o that_o still_o they_o have_v be_v support_v in_o all_o their_o wicked_a attempt_n partly_o by_o stir_v up_o subject_n to_o rebel_v against_o their_o sovereign_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o canonist_n schoolman_n monk_n friar_n hireling_n and_o flatterer_n yet_o their_o hypocrisy_n pride_n covetousness_n and_o ambition_n be_v never_o so_o close_o cover_v and_o cloak_v with_o st._n peter_n name_n and_o sundry_a other_o flashood_n wring_n and_o wrest_n but_o that_o their_o nakedness_n in_o that_o behalf_n with_o all_o their_o deformity_n be_v clear_o discover_v by_o the_o wise_a sort_n and_o there_o be_v always_o some_o that_o spare_v not_o as_o there_o be_v occasion_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o conscience_n to_o speak_v the_o truth_n when_o the_o say_v gregory_n do_v so_o proud_o encounter_v with_o the_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o 5._o he_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o perjure_a person_n and_o depose_v from_o his_o place_n by_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o worm_n in_o the_o year_n 1076._o by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n almost_o save_v those_o of_o saxony_n who_o in_o his_o quarrel_n be_v become_v traitor_n to_o the_o empire_n 5._o and_o afterward_o also_o in_o the_o year_n 1080._o the_o say_v gregory_n be_v more_o rough_o handle_v in_o another_o council_n of_o thirty_o bishop_n at_o brixia_n wherein_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o perturber_n of_o the_o christian_a empire_n a_o sour_a of_o discord_n a_o protector_n of_o perjury_n a_o murderer_n a_o necromancer_n one_o possess_v with_o a_o wicked_a spirit_n a_o man_n altogether_o unworthy_a of_o the_o papacy_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v deprive_v and_o expel_v henry_n the_o five_o 6._o with_o his_o council_n do_v easy_o discern_v the_o pack_n both_o of_o paschal_n the_o second_o and_o of_o his_o predecessor_n when_o he_o complain_v of_o their_o thrust_v he_o into_o arm_n against_o his_o father_n and_o how_o genitore_fw-la oppresso_fw-la his_o father_n be_v overbear_v they_o seek_v likewise_o his_o suppression_n and_o overthrow_n he_o charge_v they_o with_o great_a unthankfulness_n in_o that_o be_v make_v rich_a by_o the_o emperor_n they_o be_v never_o satisfy_v but_o under_o a_o religious_a pretence_n of_o ecclesiastical_a liberty_n desire_v still_o more_o and_o more_o and_o that_o by_o shake_v off_o from_o their_o shoulder_n all_o duty_n and_o subjection_n they_o do_v affect_v the_o empire_n itself_o and_o will_v not_o cease_v until_o they_o have_v it_o end_v with_o this_o the_o emperor_n plainness_n ibidem_fw-la the_o say_a paschal_n be_v incense_v make_v certain_a unlawful_a decree_n against_o the_o say_a emperor_n which_o decree_v the_o divine_n of_o fraxinum_n who_o be_v account_v the_o most_o learned_a man_n in_o all_o germany_n do_v condemn_v and_o reverse_v as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o insolent_a speech_n of_o adrian_n the_o four_o messenger_n one_o that_o be_v present_a have_v slay_v the_o say_a messenger_n ibidem_fw-la if_o the_o emperor_n have_v not_o stay_v he_o and_o two_o archbishop_n thereupon_o do_v write_v to_o rome_n accuse_v the_o priest_n there_o of_o pertinacy_n pride_n covetousness_n and_o faction_n against_o the_o emperor_n require_v they_o to_o give_v adrian_n their_o pope_n some_o better_a counsel_n frederick_n the_o second_o 7._o in_o one_o of_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o christendom_n in_o defence_n of_o himself_o against_o gregory_n the_o nine_o do_v likewise_o most_o notable_o describe_v the_o ambitious_a aspire_a heart_n of_o the_o
power_n unto_o other_o and_o write_v thus_o whatsoever_o emperor_n have_v they_o have_v it_o from_o christ_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v either_o take_v from_o king_n and_o emperor_n the_o execution_n of_o their_o authority_n as_o be_v himself_o the_o high_a king_n and_o emperor_n or_o he_o may_v not_o if_o he_o may_v then_o be_v he_o great_a than_o christ_n if_o he_o may_v not_o ergo_fw-la he_o have_v not_o in_o truth_n any_o regal_a power_n and_o he_o conclude_v this_o point_n with_o this_o observation_n as_o the_o sun_n do_v not_o make_v or_o institute_v the_o moon_n but_o god_n himself_o so_o likewise_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o pontifical_a dignity_n be_v not_o one_o neither_o do_v the_o one_o absolute_o depend_v upon_o the_o other_o last_o 4._o to_o prove_v his_o three_o proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n direct_o he_o reason_v in_o this_o sort_n christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n whilst_o he_o live_v here_o upon_o earth_n neither_o take_v nor_o will_v take_v any_o temporal_a dominion_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v christ_n vicar_n and_o do_v represent_v christ_n unto_o we_o qualis_fw-la erat_fw-la dùm_fw-la hîc_fw-la inter_fw-la homines_fw-la viveret_fw-la as_o he_o be_v whilst_o he_o live_v here_o among_o man_n therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o temporal_a dominion_n now_o before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o the_o first_o proposition_n of_o this_o argument_n and_o that_o he_o may_v make_v the_o ground_n thereof_o more_o plain_a he_o say_v 1._o that_o christ_n be_v always_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o creature_n in_o the_o same_o sort_n that_o the_o father_n be_v 2._o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v eternal_a and_o divine_a and_o neither_o take_v away_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n nor_o can_v agree_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 3._o that_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n be_v the_o spiritual_a king_n of_o all_o man_n and_o have_v most_o ample_a spiritual_a power_n over_o all_o man_n as_o well_o faithful_a as_o infidel_n 4._o that_o this_o spiritual_a power_n of_o christ_n shall_v after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v sensible_a and_o manifest_a 5._o that_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o kingdom_n do_v begin_v in_o our_o head_n christ_n when_o he_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a upon_o which_o ground_n he_o make_v these_o inference_n 1._o that_o the_o say_v spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n the_o glory_n whereof_o begin_v after_o his_o resurrection_n be_v not_o a_o temporal_a kingdom_n such_o as_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o king_n 2._o that_o the_o say_v spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n over_o all_o man_n can_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o presupposeth_a the_o resurrection_n 3._o that_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v man_n if_o he_o have_v list_n and_o have_v think_v it_o expedient_a for_o he_o can_v have_v take_v upon_o he_o a_o kingly_a authority_n but_o will_v not_o and_o therefore_o neither_o do_v receive_v any_o such_o authority_n neither_o have_v not_o only_o the_o execution_n of_o any_o dominion_n or_o kingdom_n but_o not_o the_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o any_o kingdom_n temporal_a and_o so_o he_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o say_a proposition_n say_v that_o if_o christ_n have_v any_o such_o temporal_a kingdom_n he_o have_v it_o either_o by_o hereditary_a succession_n or_o by_o election_n or_o by_o the_o law_n of_o war_n or_o by_o the_o especial_a gift_n of_o god_n but_o he_o have_v it_o by_o none_o of_o these_o four_o way_n ergo_fw-la he_o have_v no_o such_o dominion_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o all_o which_o particular_n he_o take_v good_a pain_n and_o then_o come_v to_o the_o explication_n of_o these_o word_n in_o his_o second_o proposition_n of_o the_o first_o argument_n concern_v this_o point_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n do_v represent_v christ_n unto_o we_o as_o he_o be_v when_o he_o live_v here_o among_o man_n and_o say_v 1._o we_o can_v attribute_v unto_o the_o pope_n those_o office_n which_o christ_n have_v either_o as_o he_o be_v god_n or_o as_o he_o be_v a_o immortal_a and_o glorify_a man_n but_o those_o which_o he_o have_v as_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man._n 2._o neither_o have_v the_o pope_n all_o the_o power_n which_o christ_n have_v as_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man._n for_o he_o because_o he_o be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n have_v a_o certain_a power_n which_o man_n call_v the_o power_n of_o excellency_n whereby_o he_o rule_v both_o faithful_a and_o infidel_n but_o the_o faithful_a only_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o pope_n 3._o christ_n have_v authority_n to_o institute_v sacrament_n and_o to_o work_v miracle_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o 4._o christ_n have_v power_n to_o absolve_v man_n from_o their_o sin_n without_o the_o sacrament_n which_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v with_o bellarmin_n that_o he_o may_v not_o bear_v this_o great_a burden_n upon_o his_o own_o shoulder_n and_o undergo_v alone_o the_o envy_n thereof_o ensue_a a_o army_n of_o writer_n both_o old_a and_o new_a do_v concur_v he_o have_v himself_o set_v down_o the_o name_n of_o some_o and_o for_o his_o better_a supportation_n we_o have_v think_v it_o fit_a to_o assist_v he_o with_o two_o more_o viz._n the_o archbishop_n of_o compsa_n one_o ambrose_n catharinus_n and_o boëtius_n epon_n a_o count_n palatin_n who_o book_n of_o heroical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a question_n print_v at_o douai_n 1588._o a_o place_n whole_o jesuit_v be_v great_o approve_v by_o tho._n stapleton_n our_o countryman_n and_o balthasar_n seulin_n the_o dean_n of_o amate_v a_o licentiate_a of_o the_o pope_n law_n and_o the_o ordinary_a visitor_n or_o allower_n of_o such_o book_n as_o be_v think_v meet_v to_o be_v publish_v non_fw-la desunt_fw-la plerique_fw-la etc._n etc._n 13._o there_o be_v many_o say_v catharinus_n who_o be_v not_o content_a with_o that_o that_o be_v sufficient_a ne_o dicam_fw-la nimiùm_fw-la that_o i_o may_v not_o say_v it_o be_v too_o much_o who_o either_o to_o flatter_v or_o of_o too_o gross_a simplicity_n do_v affirm_v that_o the_o temporal_a dominion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v belong_v of_o right_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v christ_n chief_a vicar_n in_o earth_n in_o that_o christ_n say_v all_o thing_n be_v give_v to_o i_o of_o my_o father_n verùm_fw-la ridicula_fw-la haec_fw-la profectò_fw-la quae_fw-la neque_fw-la ipsimet_fw-la pontifices_fw-la auderent_fw-la asserere_fw-la but_o assure_o these_o be_v ridiculous_a joy_n the_o pope_n themselves_o dare_v not_o for_o shame_v so_o affirm_v quòd_fw-la autèm_fw-la papa_n sit_fw-la vicarius_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v call_v christ_n vicar_n what_o force_n have_v it_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o all_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o world_n be_v commit_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o he_o in_o temporal_a cause_n nay_o say_v he_o it_o rather_o induce_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v not_o commit_v unto_o he_o quoniam_fw-la christus_fw-la abjecit_fw-la ea_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la homo_fw-la erat_fw-la in_fw-la mundo_fw-la non_fw-la habuit_fw-la because_o he_o cast_v they_o from_o he_o and_o as_o he_o be_v man_n have_v they_o not_o himself_o and_o the_o say_v boëtius_n epon_n 5._o have_v set_v down_o the_o reason_n why_o some_o have_v maintain_v the_o pope_n say_a universal_a dominion_n in_o temporal_a cause_n and_o give_v a_o touch_n of_o the_o jew_n error_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n oversight_n in_o that_o behalf_n he_o say_v thus_o neque_fw-la nos_fw-la forsitan_fw-la judaeis_n multò_fw-la vel_fw-la meliores_fw-la vel_fw-la minùs_fw-la inepti_fw-la sumus_fw-la dum_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o we_o perhaps_o be_v not_o either_o much_o better_o or_o less_o foolish_a than_o the_o jew_n whilst_o we_o do_v ridiculous_o mingle_v the_o temporal_a and_o earthly_a kingdom_n or_o empire_n with_o the_o kingdom_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a by_o wrest_v to_o that_o purpose_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n which_o do_v nothing_o less_o than_o make_v either_o christ_n or_o peter_n or_o the_o pope_n the_o temporal_a monarch_n either_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n digni_fw-la profectò_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o be_v certain_o worthy_a of_o this_o answer_n of_o christ_n nescitis_fw-la quid_fw-la petatis_fw-la quidve_fw-la disputetis_fw-la you_o know_v not_o what_o you_o ask_v nor_o what_o you_o dispute_v of_o and_o thus_o it_o appear_v what_o opposition_n there_o have_v be_v ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o against_o the_o insolency_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o such_o eminent_a and_o sovereign_a authority_n temporal_a over_o all_o king_n and_o emperor_n 23._o and_o how_o in_o these_o late_a time_n 2._o through_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n man_n of_o any_o good_a part_n or_o